acthub.
In forceCurrent

Finance Act 1989

Sections443AmendmentsCases SoonExplanatory Notes Soon
Version
Compare with

Finance Act 1989

1989 c. 26

An Act to grant certain duties, to alter other duties, and to amend the law relating to the National Debt and the Public Revenue, and to make further provision in connection with Finance.

Enacted[27th July 1989]

X1C1X2Most Gracious Sovereign, WE, Your Majesty’s most dutiful and loyal subjects, the Commons of the United Kingdom in Parliament assembled, towards raising the necessary supplies to defray Your Majesty’s public expenses, and making an addition to the public revenue, have freely and voluntarily resolved to give and grant unto Your Majesty the several duties hereinafter mentioned; and do therefore most humbly beseech Your Majesty that it may be enacted, and be it enacted by the Queen’s most Excellent Majesty, by and with the advice and consent of the Lords Spiritual and Temporal, and Commons, in this present Parliament assembled, and by the authority of the same, as follows:—C53C52

Part I  Customs and Excise, Value Added Tax and Car Tax

CHAPTER I  Customs and Excise

Hydrocarbon oil duties

1  Rates.

1 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F1
2 In section 13A of that Act (rebate on unleaded petrol), for “£0.0202” there shall be substituted “£0.0272”.
3 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F1
4 This section shall be deemed to have come into force at 6 o’clock in the evening of 14th March 1989.

2  Reliefs.

1 The following section shall be inserted after section 20A of the M1Hydrocarbon Oil Duties Act 1979—
2 In consequence of subsection (1) above, in paragraph 6 of Schedule 5 to the M2Hydrocarbon Oil Duties Act 1979 after “section” there shall be inserted “20AA or”.

Alcoholic liquor duties

F23  Original gravity of beer.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

4  Blending made-wines etc.

1 Section 55 of the Alcoholic Liquor Duties Act 1979 (charge of excise duty on made-wine) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (5) (which, where certain conditions are satisfied, lifts the requirement to hold a licence for premises where made-wine is produced),after paragraph (d) there shall be added
3 After subsection (5) there shall be inserted—
4 This section shall have effect in relation to the blending or other mixing of made-wines, or of made-wines and wines, on or after the day on which this Act is passed.

5  Description as beer.

Section 73 of the M3Alcoholic Liquor Duties Act 1979(which prohibits anyone from describing as beer any substance on which beer duty has not been paid) shall cease to have effect.

Vehicles excise duty

6  Rates.

F31 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F32 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F4
F35 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F56 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F37 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F67 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F78 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F89 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F910 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1011 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1112 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1213 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

14  Dishonoured cheques.

F131 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F142 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F133 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F144 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F135 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F146 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F137 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

General

F1515 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

16  Time limits for proceedings.

1 After section 146 of the Customs and Excise Management Act 1979 there shall be inserted—
2 Section 147(1) of that Act shall cease to have effect.
F163 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4 This section shall have effect in relation to offences committed on or after the day on which this Act is passed.

17  Disbursements in Port of London.

In section 17 of the M4Customs and Excise Management Act1979 (general rule that customs and excise receipts, after deduction of disbursements, are to be paid into the Commissioners’ General Account at the Bank of England) paragraph (a) of subsection (5) (special rule that disbursements in Port of London are to be paid out of that Account) shall cease to have effect.

CHAPTER II  Value Added Tax

Zero-rating etc.

F1718 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1819 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1920 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F2021 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F2122 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F2223 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Other provisions

F2324 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F2425 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F2526 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Chapter III  Miscellaneous

F27827  Relief from car tax where vehicle leased to the handicapped.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

28  Reliefs from duties and taxes for persons enjoying certain immunities and privileges.

1 After section 13 of the M5 Customs and Excise Duties(General Reliefs) Act 1979 there shall be inserted the following sections—
2 Section 13C of the M6 Customs and Excise Duties (General Reliefs) Act 1979 inserted by subsection (1) above shall have effect where relief is conferred on or after the day on which this Act is passed.
3 In section 17 of the Customs and Excise Duties (General Reliefs) Act 1979,in subsection (3), for “or 13” there shall be substituted “13 or13A” and, in subsection (4), for “or 13(1)” there shall be substituted “13(1) or 13A”.

29  Recovery of overpaid excise duty and car tax.

1 This section applies to proceedings for restitution of an amount paid to the Commissioners of Customs and Excise by way of excise duty or car tax.
2 Proceedings to which this section applies shall not be dismissed by reason only of the fact that the amount was paid by reason of a mistake of law.
3 In any proceedings to which this section applies it shall be a defence that repayment of an amount would unjustly enrich the claimant.
4 This section shall have effect in relation to proceedings commenced on or after the day on which this Act is passed.

Part II  Income Tax, Corporation Tax and Capital Gains Tax

CHAPTER I  General

Income tax rates and allowances

F32130  Charge and rates of income tax for 1989-90.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F32131  Age allowance.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F32132  Operative date for PAYE.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

33  Married couples. C2

1 Sections 257 to 257F and 265 of the M7Taxes Act 1988,as inserted for the year 1990-91 and subsequent years by the Finance Act 1988,shall be amended as follows.
2 In section 257(1) for “£2,605” there shall be substituted “£2,785”.
3 In section 257(2) for “£3,180” there shall be substituted “£3,400”.
4 In section 257(3)—
F364a . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
b for “£3,310” there shall be substituted “£3,540”.
5 In section 257(5)—
a for “£10,600” there shall be substituted “£11,400”,and
F365b . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6 In section 257A(1) for “£1,490” there shall be substituted “£1,590”.
7 In section 257A(2) for “£1,855” there shall be substituted “£1,985”.
8 In section 257A(3)—
F366a . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
b for “£1,895” there shall be substituted “£2,025”.
9 In section 257A(5)—
a for “£10,600” there shall be substituted “£11,400”,and
F367b . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
10 In sections F28. . . 257D(8) and 265(3) after paragraph (b) there shall be inserted
.
11 In section 257E(1)(b) for “80” there shall be substituted “75”.
F3012 In section 257E(2)(a) for “£3,180” there shall be substituted “£3,400”.
F3013 In section 257E(2)(b) for “£3,310” there shall be substituted “£3,540”.

Corporation tax rates etc.

34  Charge and rate of corporation tax for financial year 1989. C3

Corporation tax shall be charged for the financial year 1989 at the rate of 35 per cent.

F37535  Corporation tax: small companies.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Receipts basis etc.

F24036  Schedule E: revised Cases.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F24037  Schedule E: assessment on receipts basis.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F24038  Schedule E: unpaid emoluments.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F24039  Schedule E: unremitted emoluments.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F24040  Schedule E: emoluments already paid.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F240C441  Schedule E: pensions etc.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F24042  Schedule E: supplementary.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F345 43  Schedule D: computation

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F346 44   Companies with investment business and insurance companies: computation

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F24945  PAYE: meaning of payment.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Interest

46  Relief for interest.

For the year 1989-90 the qualifying maximum defined in section 367(5) of the Taxes Act 1988 (limit on relief for interest on certain loans) shall be£30,000.

F31647  Close company loans: business expansion scheme.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F32048  Close company loans: material interest.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Benefits in kind

49  Car benefits.

1 In Schedule 6 to the Taxes Act 1988 (taxation of directors and others in respect of cars) for Part I (tables of flat rate cash equivalents) there shall be substituted—
2 This section shall have effect for the year 1989-90 and subsequent years of assessment.

F24150  Security assets and services.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F24151  Assets used partly for security.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F24152  Security: supplementary.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

53  Employees earning £8,500 or more and directors.

F2501 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2502 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F250a . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F250b . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F250c . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F250d . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F250e . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
f the words “ employment to which Chapter II of Part V applies ”shall be substituted for the words from “director’s” to “section167)” in section 418(3)(a) of that Act;
F250g . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Medical insurance

C554  Relief.

1 This section applies where—
a on or after 6th April 1990 an individual makes a payment in respect of a premium under a contract of private medical insurance (whenever issued),
b the contract meets the requirement in subsection (2) below as to the person or persons insured,
c at the time the payment is made the contract is an eligible contract,
d the individual making the payment does not make it out of resources provided by another person for the purpose of enabling it to be made, and
e the individual making the payment is not entitled to claim any relief or deduction in respect of it under any other provision of the Tax Acts.
2 The requirement mentioned in subsection (1)(b) above is that the contract insures—
a an individual who at the time the payment is made is aged 60 or over and resident in the United Kingdom,
b individuals each of whom at that time is aged 60 or over and resident in the United Kingdom, or
c two individuals who are married to each other at that time, at least one of whom is aged 60 or over at that time, and each of whom is resident in the United Kingdom at that time.
2A In a case where—
a a payment is made in respect of a premium under a contract at a time when the contract meets the requirement in subsection (2) above by virtue of paragraph (c) of that subsection, and
b a payment is made under the same contract at a time after one of the individuals has died and when the contract does not (apart from this subsection) meet the requirement in subsection (2) above by virtue only of the fact that the surviving spouse is not aged 60 or over at the time,
for the purposes of subsection (2) above in its application to the contract the surviving spouse shall be deemed to be aged 60 or over at the time mentioned in paragraph (b) above.
3 If the payment is made by an individual who at the time it is made is resident in the United Kingdom (whether or not he is the individual or one of the individuals insured by the contract) the individual shall be entitled to relief under this subsection in respect of the payment; and (except where subsections (4) to (6) below apply) relief under this subsection shall be given—
a in accordance with subsections (3A) to (3C) below, and
b only on a claim made for the purpose.
3A Where an individual is entitled to relief under subsection (3) above in respect of one or more payments made in a given year of assessment, the amount of his liability for that year of assessment to income tax on his total income shall be the amount to which he would be liable apart from this section less whichever is the smaller of—
a the amount found under subsection (3B) below, and
b the amount which reduces his liability to nil.
3B The amount referred to in subsection (3A)(a) above is an amount found by—
a taking the amount of the payment referred to in subsection (3A) above or (as the case may be) the aggregate amount of the payments there referred to, and
b finding an amount equal to tax on the amount taken under paragraph (a) above at the basic rate for the year of assessment concerned.
3C In determining for the purposes of subsection (3A) above the amount of incomers on would be liable apart from this section, no account shall be taken of—
a any income tax reduction under Chapter I of Part VII of the Taxes Act 1988 or under section 347B of that Act;
b any income tax reduction under section 353(1A) of the Taxes Act 1988;
c any relief by way of a reduction of liability to tax which is given in accordance with any arrangements having effect by virtue of section 788 of the Taxes Act 1988 or by way of a credit under section 790(1) of that Act;
d any tax at the basic rate on so much of that person’s income as is income the income tax on which he is entitled to charge against any other person or to deduct, retain or satisfy out of any payment.
C64 In such cases and subject to such conditions as the Board may specify in regulations, relief under subsection (3) above shall be given in accordance with subsections (5) and (6) below.
5 An individual who is entitled to such relief in respect of a payment may deduct and retain out of it an amount equal to income tax on it at the basic rate for the year of assessment in which it is made.
6 The person to whom the payment is made—
a shall accept the amount paid after deduction in discharge of the individual’s liability to the same extent as if the deduction had not been made, and
b may, on making a claim in accordance with regulations, recover from the Board an amount equal to the amount deducted.
7 The Treasury may make regulations providing that in circumstances prescribed in the regulations—
a an individual who has made a payment in respect of a premium under a contract of private medical insurance shall cease to be and be treated as not having been entitled to relief under subsection (3) above; and
C6b he or the person to whom the payment was made (depending on the terms of the regulations) shall account to the Board for tax from which relief has been given on the basis that the individual was so entitled.
8 Regulations under subsection (7) above may include provision adapting or modifying the effect of any enactment relating to income tax in order to secure the performance of any obligation imposed under paragraph (b) of that subsection.
9 In this section—
a references to a premium, in relation to a contract of insurance, are to any amount payable under the contract to the insurer, and
b references to an individual who is resident in the United Kingdom at anytime include references to an individual who is at that time performing duties which are treated by virtue of section 132(4)(a) of the Taxes Act 1988 as performed in the United Kingdom.

55  Eligible contracts.

1 This section has effect to determine whether a contract is at a particular time (the relevant time) an eligible contract for the purposes of section 54 above.
2 A contract is an eligible contract at the relevant time if—
a it was entered into by an insurer who at the time it was entered into was a qualifying insurer and was approved by the Board for the purposes of this section,
b the period of insurance under the contract does not exceed one year(commencing with the date it was entered into),
ba at the relevant time the contract satisfies the conditions set out in subsection (2A) below,
bb the contract is not one in the case of which subsection (2D) below applies,
c the contract is not connected with any other contract at the relevant time and has not been connected with any other contract at any time since it was entered into, and
d no benefit has been provided by virtue of the contract other than an approved benefit, and
e the contract meets one or more of the three conditions set out below.
2A The conditions referred to in subsection (2)(ba) above are that—
a the contract either provides indemnity in respect of all or any of the costs of all or any of the treatments, medical services and other matters for the time being specified in regulations made by the Treasury, or in addition to providing indemnity of that description provides cash benefits falling within rules for the time being so specified,
b the contract does not confer any right other than such a right as is mentioned in paragraph (a) above or is for the time being specified in regulations made by the Treasury,
c the premium under the contract is reasonable, and
d the contract satisfies such other requirements as are for the time being specified in regulations made by the Treasury.
2B In a case where—
a at the relevant time the contract confers a material right, or more than one such right, but
b the total cost to the insurer of providing benefits in pursuance of the material right or (as the case may be) in pursuance of all the material rights would not exceed the prescribed sum,
the contract shall not thereby be regarded as failing to satisfy at the relevant time the condition set out in subsection (2A)(b) above.
2C For the purposes of subsection (2B) above a material right is a right which—
a is not a right such as is mentioned in subsection (2A)(a) above or such as is for the time being specified in regulations made under subsection (2A)(b) above, and
b is not a right to a cash benefit.
2D This subsection applies in the case of a contract (the main contract) if—
a at least one other contract is entered into which is a contract (a collateral contract) under which a benefit is provided in consideration of the insured’s entering into the main contract, and
b the cost to the insurer of fulfilling his obligations under the collateral contract (or, if there is more than one collateral contract, of fulfilling his obligations under all of them) exceeds the prescribed sum.
3 The first condition is that the contract is certified by the Board under section 56 below at the relevant time.
F414 The second condition is that, at the time the contract was entered into, it conformed with a standard form certified by the Board as a standard form of eligible contract.
F415 The third condition is that, at the time the contract was entered into, it conformed with a form varying from a standard form so certified in no other respect than by making additions—
a which were (at the time the contract was entered into) certified by the Board as compatible with an eligible contract when made to that standard form, and
b which (at that time) satisfied any conditions subject to which the additions were so certified.
F416 Where a contract is varied, and the relevant time falls after the time the variation takes effect, subsections (1) to (5) above shall have effect as if “entered into” read “varied” in each place where it occurs in subsections (4) and (5) above.
7 For the purposes of this section a contract is connected with another contract at any time if—
a they are simultaneously in force at that time,
b either of them was entered into with reference to the other, or with a view to enabling the other to be entered into on particular terms, or with a view to facilitating the other being entered into on particular terms, and
c the terms on which either of them was entered into would have been significantly less favourable to the insured if the other had not been entered into.
8 For the purposes of this section each of the following is a qualifying insurer—
a an insurer lawfully carrying on in the United Kingdom business of any of the classes specified in Part I of Schedule 2 to the M8Insurance Companies Act 1982;
b an insurer not carrying on business in the United Kingdom but carrying on business in another member State and being either a national of a member State or a company or partnership formed under the law of any part of the United Kingdom or another member State and having its registered office, central administration or principal place of business in a member State.
9 For the purposes of this section a benefit is an approved benefit if it is provided in pursuance of a right of a description
a mentioned in subsection (2A)(a) above, or
b for the time being specified in regulations made under subsection (2A)(b) above.
10 For the purposes of this section a benefit is also an approved benefit if it is not a cash benefit and—
a it is a single benefit provided otherwise than as mentioned in subsection (9) above and the cost to the insurer of providing it does not exceed the prescribed sum, or
b it is one of a number of benefits provided otherwise than as mentioned in subsection (9) above and the total cost to the insurer of providing the benefits does not exceed the prescribed sum.
11 In this section the reference to a premium, in relation to a contract of insurance, is to any amount payable under the contract to the insurer.
12 For the purposes of this section the prescribed sum is £30.
13 The Treasury may by order substitute for the sum for the time being specified in subsection (12) above such sum as may be specified in the order; and any such substitution shall have effect in relation to cases where the relevant time falls on or after such date as is specified in the order.

56  Certification of contracts.

1 The Board shall certify a contract under this section if it satisfies the conditions set out in subsection (3) below; and the certification shall be expressed to take effect from the time the conditions are satisfied, and shall take effect accordingly.
2 The Board shall revoke a certification of a contract under this section if it comes to their notice that the contract has ceased to satisfy the conditions set out in subsection (3) below; and the revocation shall be expressed to take effect from the time the conditions ceased to be satisfied, and shall take effect accordingly.
3 The conditions referred to above are that—
C7a the contract either provides indemnity in respect of all or any of the costs of all or any of the treatments, medical services and other matters for the time being specified in regulations made by the Treasury, or in addition to providing indemnity of that description provides cash benefits falling within rules for the time being so specified,
b the contract does not confer any right other than such a right as is mentioned in paragraph (a) above or is for the time being specified in regulations made by the Treasury,
c the premium under the contract is in the Board’s opinion reasonable, and
d the contract satisfies such other requirements as are for the time being specified in regulations made by the Treasury.
4 The certification of a contract by the Board under this section shall cease to have effect if the contract is varied; but this is without prejudice to the application of the preceding provisions of this section to the contract as varied.
5 Where the Board refuse to certify a contract under this section, or they revoke a certification, an appeal may be made to the Special Commissioners by—
a the insurer, or
b any person who (if the policy were certified) would be entitled to relief under section 54 above.
6 Where a contract is certified under this section, or a certification is revoked or otherwise ceases to have effect, any adjustments resulting from the certification or from its revocation or ceasing to have effect shall be made.
7 Subsection (6) above applies where a certification or revocation takes place on appeal as it applies in the case of any other certification or revocation.
8 In this section the reference to a premium, in relation to a contract of insurance, is to any amount payable under the contract to the insurer.

57  Medical insurance: supplementary.

C81 The Board may by regulations—
a provide that a claim under section 54(3) or (6)(b) above shall be made in such form and manner, shall be made at such time, and shall be accompanied by such documents, as may be prescribed;
aa make provision for and with respect to appeals against a decision of an officer of the Board or the Board with respect to a claim under section 54(6)(b) above;
b make provision, in relation to payments in respect of which a person is entitled to relief under section 54 above, for the giving by insurers in such circumstances as may be prescribed of certificates of payment in such form as may be prescribed to such persons as may be prescribed;
c provide that a person who provides (or has at any time provided) insurance under contracts of private medical insurance shall comply with any notice which is served on him by the Board and which requires him within a prescribed period to make available for the Board’s inspection documents (of a prescribed kind) relating to such contracts;
d provide that persons of such a description as may be prescribed shall, within a prescribed period of being required to do so by the Board, furnish to the Board information (of a prescribed kind) about contracts of private medical insurance;
e make provision with respect to the approval of insurers for the purposes of section 55 above and the withdrawal of approval for the purposes of that section;
f make provision for and with respect to appeals against decisions of the Board with respect to the giving or withdrawal of approval of insurers for the purposes of section 55 above;
g make provision with respect to the certification by the Board of standard forms of eligible contract and variations from standard forms of eligible contract certified by them;
h make provision for and with respect to appeals against decisions of the Board with respect to the certification of standard forms of eligible contractor variations from standard forms of eligible contract certified by them;
i provide that certification, or the revocation of a certification, under section 56 above shall be carried out in such form and manner as may be prescribed;
j make provision with respect to appeals against decisions of the Board with respect to certification or the revocation of certification under section 56 above;
C8k make provision generally as to administration in connection with sections 54 to 56 above.
F3712 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3 The following provisions of the Taxes Management Act 1970, namely—
a section 29(1)(c) (excessive relief) as it has effect apart from section 29(2) to (10) of that Act;
b section 30 (tax repaid in error etc.) apart from subsection (1B),
c section 86 (interest), and
d section 95 (incorrect return or accounts),
shall apply in relation to an amount which is paid to any person by the Board as an amount recoverable by virtue of section 54(6)(b) above but to which that person is not entitled as if it were income tax which ought not to have been repaid and, where that amount was claimed by that person, as if it had been repaid as respects a chargeable period as a relief which was not due.
3A In the application of section 86 of the Taxes Management Act 1970 by virtue of subsection (3) above in relation to sums due and payable by virtue of an assessment made under section 29(1)(c) or 30 of that Act, as applied by that subsection, the relevant date—
a in a case where the person falling within section 54(6) above has made any interim claim, within the meaning of regulations made under subsection (1) and section 54(4) above, as respects some part of the year of assessment for which the assessment is made, is 1st January in that year of assessment; and
b in any other case, is the later of the following dates, that is to say—
i 1st January in the year of assessment for which the assessment is made; or
ii the date of the making of the payment by the Board which gives rise to the assessment.
4 In sections F52. . . 257D(8) and 265(3) of the Taxes Act 1988 after paragraph (c) there shall be inserted
.
5 In subsection (1) above—
  • eligible contract” has the meaning given by section 55 above, and
  • prescribed” means prescribed by or, in relation to form, under the regulations.

Charities

58  Payroll deduction scheme.

1 In section 202(7) of the Taxes Act 1988 (which limits to £240 the deductions attracting relief) for “£240” there shall be substituted “£480”.
2 This section shall have effect for the year 1989-90 and subsequent years of assessment.

F5359 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

60  British Museum and Natural History Museum.

F3761 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3762 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F543 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3774 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Profit-related pay, share schemes etc.

61  Profit-related pay.

Schedule 4 to this Act (which amends the provisions of the Taxes Act 1988 relating to profit-related pay) shall have effect.

F25262  Savings-related share option schemes.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F5663  Profit sharing schemes.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F25364  Share option and profit sharing schemes: shares of consortium member.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

65  Employee share schemes: material interest.

In Schedule 9 to the Taxes Act 1988 the following paragraph shall be inserted after paragraph 39—

F25466  Priority share allocations for employees etc.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Employee share ownership trusts

C4467  Tax relief. C9

1 This section applies where—
a a company expends a sum in making a payment by way of contribution to the trustees of a trust which is a qualifying employee share ownership trust at the time the sum is expended,
b at that time, the company or a company which it then controls has employees who are eligible to benefit under the terms of the trust deed,
c at that time the company is resident in the United Kingdom,
d before the expiry of the expenditure period the sum is expended by the trustees for one or more of the qualifying purposes, and
e before the end of the claim period a claim for relief under this section is made.
2 In such a case the sum—
a shall be deducted in computing for the purposes of Schedule D the profits of a trade carried on by the company,
b if the company is an investment company, shall be treated as expenses of management, or
c if the company is a company in relation to which the I - E rules apply and the sum is referable, in accordance with Chapter 4 of Part 2 of the Finance Act 2012, to the company's basic life assurance and general annuity business, shall be treated for the purposes of section 76 of that Act as ordinary BLAGAB management expenses of the company.
3 For the purposes of subsection (1)(b) above, the question whether one company is controlled by another shall be construed in accordance with section840 of the Taxes Act 1988.
4 For the purposes of subsection (1)(d) above each of the following is a qualifying purpose—
a the acquisition of shares in the company which established the trust;
b the repayment of sums borrowed;
c the payment of interest on sums borrowed;
d the payment of any sum to a person who is a beneficiary under the terms of the trust deed;
e the meeting of expenses.
5 For the purposes of subsection (1)(d) above the expenditure period is the period of nine months beginning with the day following the end of the period of account in which the sum is charged as an expense of the company, or such longer period as the Board may allow by notice given to the company.
6 For the purposes of subsection (1)(e) above the claim period is the period of two years beginning with the day following the end of the period of account in which the sum is charged as an expense of the company.
7 For the purposes of this section the trustees of an employee share ownership trust shall be taken to expend sums paid to them in the order in which the sums are received by them (irrespective of the number of companies making payments).

68  Principal charges to tax. C10

1 This section applies where a chargeable event (within the meaning of section 69 below) occurs in relation to the trustees of an employee share ownership trust.
2 In such a case—
a the trustees shall be treated as receiving, when the event occurs, income of an amount that is equal to the chargeable amount (within the meaning of section 70 below),
b that income shall be chargeable to income tax for the year of assessment in which the event occurs,
ba the tax so chargeable shall be charged on the full amount of the income the trustees are treated as receiving in the year of assessment , and
bb the trustees are liable for any tax so chargeable, F302...
F308c . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3 If the whole or any part of the tax assessed on the trustees is not paid before the expiry of the period of six months beginning with the day on which the assessment becomes final and conclusive, a notice of liability to tax under this subsection may be served on a qualifying company and the tax or the part unpaid (as the case may be) shall be payable by the company on service of the notice.
4 Where a notice of liability is served under subsection (3) above—
a any interest which is due on the tax or the part (as the case may be) and has not been paid by the trustees, and
b any interest accruing due on the tax or the part (as the case may be)after the date of service,
shall be payable by the company.
5 Where a notice of liability is served under subsection (3) above and any amount payable by the company (whether on account of tax or interest) is not paid by the company before the expiry of the period of three months beginning with the date of service, the amount unpaid may be recovered from the trustees(without prejudice to the right to recover it instead from the company).
6 For the purposes of this section each of the following is a qualifying company—
a the company which established the employee share ownership trust;
b any company falling within subsection (7) below.
7 A company falls within this subsection if, before it is sought to serve a notice of liability on it under subsection (3) above—
a it has paid a sum to the trustees, and
b the sum has been deducted as mentioned in section 67(2)(a) above or treated as mentioned in section 67(2)(b) above.

C4569  Chargeable events. C11

C121 For the purposes of section 68 above each of the following is a chargeable event in relation to the trustees of an employee share ownership trust—
a the transfer of securities by the trustees, if the transfer is not a qualifying transfer;
b the transfer of securities by the trustees to persons who are at the time of the transfer beneficiaries under the terms of the trust deed, if the terms on which the transfer is made are not qualifying terms;
c the retention of securities by the trustees at the expiry of the qualifying period beginning with the date on which they acquired them;
d the expenditure of a sum by the trustees for a purpose other than a qualifying purpose.
e where—
i the trustees make a qualifying transfer within subsection (3AA) below for a consideration, and
ii they do not, during the period specified in subsection (5A) below, expend a sum of not less than the amount of that consideration for one or more qualifying purposes,
the expiry of that period.
2 For the purposes of subsection (1)(a) above a transfer is a qualifying transfer if it is made to a person who at the time of the transfer is a beneficiary under the terms of the trust deed.
3 For the purposes of subsection (1)(a) above a transfer is also a qualifying transfer if—
a it is made to the trustees of a scheme which at the time of the transfer is a profit sharing scheme approved under Schedule 9 to the Taxes Act 1988, and
b it is made for a consideration which is not less than the price the securities might reasonably be expected to fetch on a sale in the open market.
3AA For the purposes of subsection (1)(a) above a transfer is also a qualifying transfer if—
a it is a transfer of relevant shares made to the trustees of the plan trust of a share incentive plan,
b the plan is approved under Schedule 2 to the Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 when the transfer is made, and
c the consideration (if any) for which the transfer is made does not exceed the market value of the shares.
3AB For the purpose of determining whether a transfer by the trustees is a qualifying transfer within subsection (3AA) above, where on or after 21st March 2000—
a the trustees transfer or dispose of part of a holding of shares (whether by way of a qualifying transfer or otherwise), and
b the holding includes any relevant shares,
the relevant shares shall be treated as transferred or disposed of before any other shares included in that holding. For this purpose “ holding ” means any number of shares of the same class held by the trustees, growing or diminishing as shares of that class are acquired or disposed of.
3AC For the purposes of subsections (3AA) and (3AB) above—
  • market value ” has the same meaning as it has for the purposes of the SIP code (see paragraph 92 of Schedule 2 to the Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003); and
  • relevant shares ” means—
    1. shares that are held by the trustees of the employee share ownership trust at midnight on 20th March 2000, and
    2. shares purchased by those trustees with original funds after that time.
3AD For the purposes of subsection (3AC) above—
a original funds ” means any money held by the trustees of the employee share ownership trust in a bank or building society account at midnight on 20th March 2000, and
b any payment made by the trustees after that time (whether to acquire shares or otherwise) shall be treated as made out of original funds (and not out of money received after that time) until those funds are exhausted.
F613A For the purposes of subsection (1)(a) above a transfer is also a qualifying transfer if it is made by way of exchange in circumstances mentioned in section 85(1) of the Capital Gains Tax Act 1979 or section 135(1) of the Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992.
4 For the purposes of subsection (1)(b) above a transfer of securities is made on qualifying terms if—
a all the securities transferred at the same time other than those transferred on a transfer such as is mentioned in subsection (4ZA) below are transferred on similar terms,
b securities have been offered to all the persons who are beneficiaries under the terms of the trust deed by virtue of a rule which conforms with paragraph 4(2), (3) or (4) of Schedule 5 to this Act when the transfer is made, and
c securities are transferred to all such persons who have accepted.
4ZA For the purposes of subsection (1)(b) above a transfer of securities is also made on qualifying terms if—
a it is made to a person exercising a right to acquire shares, and
b that right was obtained in accordance with the provisions of an SAYE option scheme within the meaning of the SAYE code (see section 516(4) of the Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003)
i which was established by, or by a company controlled by, the company which established the trust, and
ii which is approved under Schedule 3 to that Act, and
c that right is being exercised in accordance with the provisions of that scheme, and
d the consideration for the transfer is payable to the trustees.
4A For the purposes of subsection (1)(c) above the qualifying period is—
a seven years, in the case of trusts established on or before the day on which the Finance Act 1994 was passed;
b twenty years, in the case of other trusts;
and for this purpose a trust is established when the deed under which it is established is executed.
5 For the purposes of subsection (1)(d) or (e) above each of the following is a qualifying purpose—
a the acquisition of shares in the company which established the trust;
b the repayment of sums borrowed;
c the payment of interest on sums borrowed;
d the payment of any sum to a person who is a beneficiary under the terms of the trust deed;
e the meeting of expenses.
5A The period referred to in paragraph (e) of subsection (1) above is the period—
a beginning with the qualifying transfer mentioned in that paragraph, and
b ending nine months after the end of the period of account in which that qualifying transfer took place.For this purpose the period of account means the period of account of the company that established the employee share ownership trust.
6 For the purposes of subsection (4) above, the fact that terms vary according to the levels of remuneration of beneficiaries, the length of their service, or similar factors, shall not be regarded as meaning that the terms are not similar.
7 In ascertaining for the purposes of this section whether particular securities are retained, securities acquired earlier by the trustees shall be treated as transferred by them before securities acquired by them later.
8 For the purposes of this section trustees—
a acquire securities when they become entitled to them (subject to the exceptions in subsection (9) below);
b transfer securities to another person when that other becomes entitled to them;
c retain securities if they remain entitled to them.
9 The exceptions are these—
a if securities are issued to trustees in exchange in circumstances mentioned in section 135(1) of the Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992, they shall be treated as having acquired them when they became entitled to the securities for which they are exchanged;
b if trustees become entitled to securities as a result of a reorganisation, they shall be treated as having acquired them when they became entitled to the original shares which those securities represent (construing “reorganisation” and “original shares” in accordance with section 126 of that Act).
10 If trustees agree to take a transfer of securities, for the purposes of this section they shall be treated as becoming entitled to them when the agreement is made and not on a later transfer made pursuant to the agreement.
11 If trustees agree to transfer securities to another person, for the purposes of this section the other person shall be treated as becoming entitled to them when the agreement is made and not on a later transfer made pursuant to the agreement.
12 For the purposes of this section the following are securities—
a shares;
b debentures.

70  Chargeable amounts. C13

1 This section has effect to determine the chargeable amount for the purposes of section 68 above.
2 If the chargeable event falls within section 69(1)(a), (b) or (c) above the following rules shall apply—
a if the event constitutes a disposal of the securities by the trustees for the purposes of the Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992, the chargeable amount is an amount equal to the sums allowable under section 38(1)(a) and (b) of that Act;
b if the event does not constitute such a disposal, the chargeable amount is an amount equal to the sums which would be so allowable had the trustees made a disposal of the securities for the purposes of that Act at the time the chargeable event occurs.
3 If the chargeable event falls within section 69(1)(d) above the chargeable amount is an amount equal to the sum concerned.
4 If the chargeable event falls within section 69(1)(e) above the chargeable amount is an amount equal to—
a the amount of the consideration received for the qualifying transfer mentioned in section 69(1)(e) above, less
b the amount of any expenditure by the trustees for a qualifying purpose during the period mentioned in section 69(5A) above.

71  Further charges to tax: borrowing. C14

1 This section applies where—
a a chargeable event (within the meaning of section 69 above) occurs in relation to the trustees of an employee share ownership trust,
b at the time the event occurs anything is outstanding in respect of the principal of an amount or amounts borrowed at any time by the trustees, and
c the chargeable event is one as regards which section 72(2)(b) below applies.
2 In the following provisions of this section—
a the initial chargeable event” means the event referred to in subsection (1)(a) above, and
b the total outstanding amount” means the total amount outstanding, at the time the initial chargeable event occurs, in respect of the principal of an amount or amounts borrowed at any time by the trustees.
3 If any of the total outstanding amount is repaid after the initial chargeable event occurs, a further chargeable event shall occur in relatio nto the trustees at the end of the year of assessment in which the repayment is made.
4 In such a case—
a the trustees shall be treated as receiving, when the further event occurs, income of an amount that is equal to the chargeable amount,
b that income shall be chargeable to income tax for the year of assessment at the end of which the further event occurs,
ba the tax so chargeable shall be charged on the full amount of the income the trustees are treated as receiving in the year of assessment , and
bb the trustees are liable for any tax so chargeable, F304...
F309c . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5 Subject to subsection (6) below, for the purposes of subsection (4) above the chargeable amount is an amount equal to the aggregate of the total outstanding amount repaid in the year of assessment.
6 In a case where section 72(2)(b) below had effect in the case of the initial chargeable event, for the purposes of subsection (4) above the chargeable amount is an amount equal to the smaller of—
a the aggregate of the total outstanding amount repaid in the year of assessment, and
b an amount found by applying the formula A-B-C.
7 For the purposes of subsection (6) above—
a A is the amount which would be the chargeable amount for the initial chargeable event apart from section 72(2) below,
b B is the chargeable amount for the initial chargeable event, and
c C is the amount (if any) found under subsection (8) below.
8 If, before the further chargeable event occurs, one or more prior chargeable events have occurred in relation to the trustees by virtue of the prior repayment of any of the total outstanding amount found for the time the initial chargeable event occurs, the amount found under this subsection is an amount equal to the chargeable amount for the prior chargeable event or to the aggregate of the chargeable amounts for the prior chargeable events (as the case may be).
9 In a case where—
a a chargeable event (within the meaning of section 69 above) occurs in relation to the trustees in circumstances mentioned in subsection (1) above,
b a sum falls to be included in the total outstanding amount found for the time the event occurs,
c another chargeable event (within the meaning of that section) occurs in relation to the trustees in circumstances mentioned in subsection (1) above, and
d the same sum or a part of it would (apart from this subsection) fall to be included in the total outstanding amount found for the time the event occurs,
the sum or part (as the case may be) shall not be included in the total outstanding amount found for the time the other chargeable event occurs.
10 In ascertaining for the purposes of this section whether a repayment is in respect of a particular amount, amounts borrowed earlier shall be taken to be repaid before amounts borrowed later.
11 Subsections (3) to (7) of section 68 above shall apply where tax is assessed by virtue of this section as they apply where tax is assessed by virtue of that section.

72  Limit on chargeable amount. C15

1 For the purposes of this section each of the following is a chargeable event in relation to the trustees of an employee share ownership trust—
a an event which is a chargeable event by virtue of section 69 above;
b an event which is a chargeable event by virtue of section 71 above.
2 If a chargeable event (the event in question) occurs in relation to the trustees of an employee share ownership trust, the following rules shall apply—
a the amount which would (apart from this subsection) be the chargeable amount for the event in question shall be aggregated, for the purposes of paragraph (b) below, with the chargeable amounts for other chargeable events(if any) occurring in relation to the trustees before the event in question,
b if the amount which would (apart from this subsection) be the chargeable amount for the event in question (or the aggregate found under paragraph (a)above, if there is one) exceeds the deductible amount, the chargeable amount for the event in question shall be the amount it would be apart from this subsection less an amount equal to the excess, and
c section 70(2) and (3) and section 71(5) above shall have effect subject to paragraph (b) above.
3 For the purposes of subsection (2) above the deductible amount (as regards the event in question) is an amount equal to the total of the sums falling within subsection (4) below.
4 A sum falls within this subsection if it has been received by the trustees before the occurrence of the event in question and—
a it has been deducted as mentioned in section 67(2)(a) above, or treated as mentioned in section 67(2)(b) above, before the occurrence of that event, or
b it would fall to be so deducted or treated if a claim for relief under section 67 above had been made immediately before the occurrence of that event.

73  Information. C16

1 An inspector may by notice in writing require a return to be made by the trustees of an employee share ownership trust if they have at any time received a sum which has been deducted as mentioned in section 67(2)(a) above or treated as mentioned in section 67(2)(b) above.
2 Where he requires such a return to be made the inspector shall specify the information to be contained in it.
3 The information which may be specified is information the inspector needs for the purposes of sections 68 to 72 above, and may include information about—
a sums received (including sums borrowed) by the trustees;
b expenditure incurred by them;
c assets acquired by them;
d transfers of assets made by them.
4 The information which may be required under subsection (3)(a) above may include the persons from whom the sums were received.
5 The information which may be required under subsection (3)(b) above may include the purpose of the expenditure and the persons receiving any sums.
6 The information which may be specified under subsection (3)(c) above may include the persons from whom the assets were acquired and the consideration furnished by the trustees.
7 The information which may be included under subsection (3)(d) above may include the persons to whom assets were transferred and the consideration furnished by them.
8 In a case where a sum has been deducted as mentioned in section 67(2)(a)above, or treated as mentioned in section 67(2)(b) above, the inspector shall send to the trustees to whom the payment was made a certificate stating—
a that a sum has been so deducted or so treated, and
b what sum has been so deducted or so treated.
9 In the Table in section 98 of the M9Taxes Management Act1970 (penalties for failure to comply with notices etc.) at the end of the first column there shall be inserted— “ Section 73 of the Finance Act 1989 ”.

74  Interpretation. C17

Schedule 5 to this Act shall have effect to determine whether, for the purposes of sections 67 to 73 above, a trust is at a particular time—
a an employee share ownership trust;
b a qualifying employee share ownership trust.

Pensions etc.

F30075  Retirement benefits schemes.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F30076  Non-approved retirement benefits schemes.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F30077  Personal pension schemes.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Unit trusts etc.

78 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F72

F7380 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

81  Offshore funds operating equalisation arrangements.

1 In section 758 of the Taxes Act 1988 (offshore funds operating equalisation arrangements) in subsection (6) (reference to section 78 of the M10 Capital Gains Tax Act 1979 not to include reference to it as applied by section 82) for the words “but not” there shall be substituted the words “and a reference to section 78”.
2 This section shall apply where a conversion of securities occurs on or after 14th March 1989; and “conversion of securities” here has the same meaning as in section 82 of the Capital Gains Tax Act 1979.

Life assurance

F40282  Calculation of profits: bonuses etc

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F40382A Calculation of profits: policy holders' tax

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F40482B Unappropriated surplus on valuation

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F33982C Relevant financial reinsurance contracts

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41882D Treatment of profits: life assurance — adjustment consequent on change in Insurance Prudential Sourcebook

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41882E Section 82D: treatment of transferors under insurance business transfer schemes

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41882F Section 82D: treatment of transferees under insurance business transfer schemes

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F405 83   Receipts to be taken into account.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F40883XA Structural assets

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F40983YA Changes in value of assets brought into account: non-profit companies

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41083YB Meaning of “appropriate line 51 amount” for purposes of s.83YA

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41983YC FAFTS: charge in relevant period of account

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41983YD FAFTS: deduction in subsequent periods of account

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41983YE Regulations: apportionment and redefining “financial reinsurance arrangement”

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41983YF Financial reinsurance arrangements: further provision

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F34283ZA Contingent loans

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F406 83A   Meaning of “brought into account”.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F40783B Changes in recognised accounts: attribution of amounts carried forward under s.432F of Taxes Act 1988

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F34083AA   Amounts added to long term insurance fund of a company in excess of that company’s loss.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F34183AB  Treatment of surplus where there is a subsequent transfer of business from the company etc.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

84  Interpretation of sections 85 to 89 and further provisions about insurance companies.

F2691 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3272 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3283 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F4114 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3295 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3306 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41285  Charge of certain receipts of basic life assurance business.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41385A Excess adjusted life assurance trade profits

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41486  Spreading of relief for acquisition expenses.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F33287  Management expenses.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41588  Corporation tax: policy holders’ share of profits.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F27088A   Lower corporation tax rate on certain insurance company profits.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F416 89   Policy holders’ share of profits.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F31289A  Modification of sections 82 to 83A, 88 and 89 in relation to overseas life insurance companies.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F34390  Life policies etc. held by companies.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F33390A Interpretation

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Underwriters

F42191  Premiums trust funds: stock lending.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

92  Regulations about underwriters etc.

F4221 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F4222 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F743 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F754 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F755 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F756 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F757 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Securities

F7693 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F7794 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F7895 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

96  Securities: miscellaneous.

F4241 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3172 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F793 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F4234 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Groups of companies

97  Set-off of ACT where companies remain in the same group.

1 In section 240 of the Taxes Act 1988 (set-off of company’s ACT against subsidiary’s liability to corporation tax) at the end of subsection (5)(set-off not to be made against subsidiary’s liability to corporation tax for any accounting period in which, or in any part of which, it was not a subsidiary of the surrendering company) there shall be added the words “unless throughout that period or part both companies were subsidiaries of a third company”.
2 This section shall have effect in relation to accounting periods ending on or after 14th March 1989.

98  Restriction on set-off of ACT.

1 After section 245 of the Taxes Act 1988 there shall be inserted—
2 This section shall have effect where the change in the ownership of the relevant company occurs on or after 14th March 1989.

F8299 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F378100  Change in ownership of company.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F379101  Treatment of convertible shares or securities for purposes relating togroup relief etc.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F380102  Surrender of company tax refund etc. within group.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Close companies

103  Repeal of apportionment provisions.

1 Except as provided by subsection (2) below, Chapter III of Part XI of theTaxes Act 1988 (apportionment of undistributed income etc. of close companies)shall not have effect in relation to accounting periods beginning after 31stMarch 1989.
2 Section 427(4) of the Taxes Act 1988 (which gives relief to an individualwhere income apportioned to him in an earlier accounting period of a closecompany is included in a distribution received by him in a later accountingperiod), and section 427(5) of, and Part I of Schedule 19 to, that Act so faras they relate to section 427(4), shall continue to have effect in any casewhere the subsequent distribution referred to in section 427(4) is made before1st April 1992.

F381104  Meaning of “close company”.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F382105  Small companies’ rate not available to certain close companies.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

106  Restriction on payment of tax credits.

1 In section 231 of the Taxes Act 1988 (tax credits for certain recipientsof qualifying distributions) in subsection (3) after the words “made and”there shall be inserted the words “subject to subsections (3A) to (3D)below” and after that subsection there shall be inserted—
2 This section shall have effect in relation to distributions made bycompanies in accounting periods beginning after 31st March 1989.

107  Close companies: consequential amendments.

Schedule 12 to this Act (in which Part I contains administrativeprovisions relating to close companies and Part II makes amendments connectedwith section 103 above) shall have effect.

Settlements etc.

F84108 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

109  Settlements where settlor retains interest in settled property.

F851 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F852 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F853 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2914 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F310110  Residence of trustees.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

111  Residence of personal representatives.

F3131 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3132 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3133 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4 In section 824(9) of the Taxes Act 1988 (repayment supplements), for the words from “or, in” to “section 701)” there shall be substituted the words “or personal representatives (within the meaning of section 111 of the Finance Act 1989)”.
5 F315... this section shall apply for the year 1989-90 and subsequent years of assessment.
F3146 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3147 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3148 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Miscellaneous

F292112  Security: trades etc.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F293113  Security: trades etc. (supplementary).

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F348F420114  Relief for pre-trading expenditure.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F436115  Double taxation: tax credits.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F86116 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Chapter II  Capital Allowances

117–120 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F87

F88121 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

CHAPTER III  Capital Gains

Exemptions

F89122 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

123  Increase of chattel exemption.

1 In the following enactments, namely—
F90a . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F372b . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
c section 25(7) of that Act (information about assets disposed of),
for “£3,000”, in each place where it occurs, there shall besubstituted “£6,000”.
2 This section applies to disposals on or after 6th April 1989 andaccordingly, in relation to subsection (1)(b) above, to assets acquired on orafter that date.

Gifts

F91124 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F92125 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Non-residents etc.

F93126 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F94127 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F95128 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F96129 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F97130 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F98131 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F99132 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F100133 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F101134 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Value shifting and groups of companies

F102135 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F103136 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F104137 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F105138 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Miscellaneous

F106139 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F107140 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F108141 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

CHAPTER IV  Management

Information

142  Power to call for documents and information.

1 Section 20 of the M11 Taxes Management Act 1970 (power tocall for documents of taxpayer and others) shall be amended in accordance withsubsections (2) to (8) below.
F3492 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3503 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3514 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5 Subsections (4) and (5) shall be omitted.
6 In subsection (6)—
F352a . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
b the words “and in relation” onwards shall be omitted.
F3537 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3548 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3559 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
10 This section shall apply with respect to notices given on or after the day on which this Act is passed.

143  Power to call for papers of tax accountant.

1 In section 20A of the M12 Taxes Management Act 1970 (powerto call for papers of tax accountant) for the lasr sentence of subsection (1)there shall be substituted—
2 This section shall apply with respect to notices given on or after the dayon which this Act is passed.

144  Restrictions on powers under TMA ss.20 and 20A.

1 Section 20B of the M13 Taxes Management Act 1970(restrictions on powers under sections 20 and 20A) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (1), after the word “question” there shall be inserted the words “, or to furnish the particulars in question”.
F3563 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4 In subsection (2), after the words “deliver documents”, in the first place where they occur, there shall be inserted the words “or furnish particulars”.
F3575 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6 In subsection (7), the words from “to a person” to “daughter”shall be omitted.
F3587 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
8 This section shall apply with respect to notices given on or after the day on which this Act is passed.

145  Falsification etc. of documents.

1 After section 20B of the M14Taxes Management Act 1970there shall be inserted—
2 This section shall apply to any falsification, concealment, destructionor disposal of a document occurring on or after the day on which this Act ispassed.

F336146  Entry with warrant to obtain documents.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F337147  Procedure where documents etc. are removed.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

148  Interpretation.

1 Section 20D of the M15Taxes Management Act 1970 shall beamended as follows.
2 In subsection (2), for the words “of returns or accounts to be made ordelivered by the other” there shall be substituted the words “or deliveryof any information, return, accounts or other document which he knows will be,or is or are likely to be, used”.
3 For subsection (3) there shall be substituted—
F3384 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Assessments, claims etc.

149  Assessments founded on fraudulent or negligent conduct.

1 The following section shall be substituted for section 36 of the Taxes Management Act 1970—
2 Sections 37 to 39 (special provisions as to “neglect”) and section41 (leave required for certain assessments) of the Taxes Management Act 1970shall cease to have effect.
3 The words “section 36” shall be substituted—
a for the words “sections 36, 37 and 39” in section 30(6) of the M16Taxes Management Act 1970 (tax repaid in error etc.),
b for the words “sections 37 to 39” in section 118(3) of that Act (effect under law of Scotland of assessment in partnership name),
c for the words “sections 36 and 39” in paragraph 10(1) of Schedule 13to the Taxes Act 1988 (assessments to advance corporation tax), and
F318d . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4 The words “ fraudulent or negligent conduct ” shall be substituted—
a for the words “fraud, wilful default or neglect” in—
F383i . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F384ii . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
iii paragraph 9 of Schedule 16A to the M17Finance Act 1973and of Schedule 19A to the Taxes Act 1988 (Lloyd’s), and
F319b . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5 In section 105 of the Taxes Management Act 1970 (admissibility of evidence), for the words “fraud or default” and the words “fraud or wilful default” there shall be substituted the words “fraudulent conduct”.
6 In paragraph 9 of Schedule 16A to the Finance Act 1973 and of Schedule 19Ato the Taxes Act 1988, for “37, 40 and 41” there shall be substituted “and 40”.
7 Nothing in this section shall affect the making of assessments—
a for years of assessment before the year 1983-84, or
b for accounting periods which ended before 1st April 1983.

150  Further assessments: claims etc.

1 The following sections shall be inserted after section 43 of the TaxesManagement Act 1970—
2 This section shall apply in relation to any assessment notice of which isissued on or after the day on which this Act is passed.

F385151  Assessment of trustees etc.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Distress and poinding etc.

152  Distress for non-payment of tax.

1 Section 61 of the M18Taxes Management Act 1970 (distress)shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (1), for the words “the collector shall” onwards thereshall be substituted the words “the collector may distrain upon the goods and chattels of the personcharged (in this section referred to as “the person indefault”).”
3 In subsection (2), for the words from “a collector” to “Commissioners” there shall be substituted the words “a justice of thepeace, on being satisfied by information on oath that there is reasonableground for believing that a person is neglecting or refusing to pay a sumcharged, may issue a warrant in writing authorising a collector to”.
4 In subsection (4), for the words “neglecting or refusing to pay”there shall be substituted the words “in default”.
5 In subsection (5)—
a for the word “aforesaid” there shall be substituted the words “indefault”,
b the words “within the said five days” shall be omitted,
c for the words from “two or more inhabitants of the parish” to “sufficient persons” there shall be substituted the words “one or moreindependent persons appointed by the collector”, and
d the words from “The costs” to “the collector, and” shall beomitted.
6 The following subsection shall be added after that subsection—
7 This section shall come into force on such day as the Treasury may byorder made by statutory instrument appoint.

153  Priority in cases of distraint by others.

1 Section 62 of the M19Taxes Management Act 1970 (priorityof claim for tax) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (1)—
a for the words from the beginning to “shall be” there shall besubstituted the words “If at any time at which any goods or chattelsbelonging to any person (in this section referred to as “the personin default”) are”,
b for the word “unless” there shall be substituted the words “theperson in default is in arrears in respect of any such sums as are referredto in subsection (1A) below, the goods or chattels may not be so taken unlesson demand made by the collector”, and
c for the words “arrears of tax” onwards there shall be substituted thewords “such sums as have fallen due at or before the date of seizure.”
3 The following subsection shall be inserted after that subsection—
4 In subsection (2)—
a for the words from the beginning to “the collector shall” there shallbe substituted the words “If the sums referred to in subsection (1) aboveare not paid within ten days of the date of the demand referred to in thatsubsection, the collector may”,
b for the words “shall proceed” there shall be substituted the words “may proceed”, and
c for the words “the tax charged and claimed” there shall besubstituted the words “those sums”.

154  Recovery of tax from debtor in Scotland.

1 Section 63 of the M20Taxes Management Act 1970 (recoveryof tax in Scotland) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (3), for the words “which relates to” onwards thereshall be substituted the words
3 The following subsection shall be added after that subsection—

155  Priority in cases of poinding etc. by others in Scotland.

1 Section 64 of the Taxes Management Act 1970 (priority of claim for tax inScotland) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (1)—
a for the words from the beginning to “shall be” there shall besubstituted the words “If at any time at which any moveable goods andeffects belonging to any person (in this section referred to as “theperson in default”) are”,
b for the word “unless” there shall be substituted the words “theperson in default is in arrears in respect of any such sums as are referredto in subsection (1A) below, the goods and effects may not be so taken unlesson demand made by the collector”, and
c for the words “the tax so in arrear” onwards there shall besubstituted the words “such sums as have fallen due at or before the dateof poinding or, as the case may be, other diligence or assignation.”
3 The following subsection shall be inserted after that subsection—
4 In subsection (2)—
a for the words from the beginning to “the tax claimed shall” thereshall be substituted the words “If the sums referred to in subsection (1)above are not paid within ten days of the date of the demand referred to inthat subsection, the sums shall”, and
b for the words “proceeding at his instance” there shall be substitutedthe word “proceedings”.

Interest etc.

156  Interest on overdue tax.

1 In section 86 of the M21Taxes Management Act 1970, forsubsection (3) and the words in subsection (4) preceding the Table there shallbe substituted—
.
2 In section 55 of that Act—
a in subsection (2), for the words “it were” onwards there shall besubstituted the words “there had been no appeal.”,
b in subsection (6), for paragraphs (a) and (b) there shall besubstituted—
and
c for subsection (9) there shall be substituted—
3 In section 56(9) of that Act, for the words “amount of” there shallbe substituted the words “amount charged by”.
4 This section shall apply to tax charged by any assessment notice of whichis issued after 30th July 1982.

157  Effect of certain claims on interest.

1 In relation to any tax charged by an assessment made under section 252(1)of the Taxes Act 1988 to recover corporation tax that becomes payable as aresult of the making of a claim under section 240 of that Act, the reckonabledate for the purposes of section 86 of the M22Taxes ManagementAct 1970 (in this section referred to as “section 86”) is the date which is given by paragraph 5 ofthe Table in subsection (4) of that section.
2 Subsections (3) and (4) below apply in any case where—
a there is in any accounting period of a company (in this section referredto as “the later period”) an amount of surplus advance corporationtax, as defined in subsection (3) of section 239 of the Taxes Act 1988, and
b pursuant to a claim under the said subsection (3), the whole or any partof that amount is treated for the purposes of the said section 239 asdischarging liability for an amount of corporation tax for an earlieraccounting period (in this section referred to as “the earlier period”), and
c if the claim under the said subsection (3) had not been made—
i an amount of corporation tax assessed for the earlier period would carryinterest in accordance with section 86, or
ii an assessment could have been made under section 252(1) of that Act torecover corporation tax for the earlier period.
3 In determining the amount of interest payable under section 86 oncorporation tax unpaid for the earlier period, no account shall be taken ofany reduction in the amount of that tax which results from section 239(3) ofthe Taxes Act 1988 except so far as concerns interest for any time after theday following the expiry of nine months from the end of the later period.
4 Where, but for the claim under section 239(3) of the Taxes Act 1988, anassessment could have been made under section 252(1) of that Act to recovercorporation tax for the earlier period, interest under section 86 shall bechargeable, in relation to any time not later than the day referred to insubsection (3) above, as if the claim had not been made and such an assessmenthad been made.
5 In relation to interest charged under section 86 by virtue of subsection(4) above, section 69 of the M23Taxes Management Act 1970shall have effect with the substitution for the words following paragraph (c)of the words “as if it were tax charged and due and payable under anassessment”.
6 In this section—
a subsection (1) above shall have effect where the claim under 240 of theTaxes Act 1988 is made on or after 14th March 1989, and
b subsections (2) to (5) above shall have effect where the claim undersection 239(3) of that Act is made on or after that date,
but this section shall not have effect in relation to corporation tax forany accounting period ending after the day which is the appointed day for thepurposes of section 85 of the M24Finance (No.2) Act 1987.

158  Small amounts of interest.

1 In the Taxes Management Act 1970—
a section 86(6) (remission of interest payable on overdue income tax,capital gains tax or corporation tax where interest would not exceed£30), and
b section 87(4) (no interest payable on overdue advance corporation tax orincome tax on company payments where interest would not exceed £30),
shall cease to have effect.
2 The words “of not less than £25” in—
a [F110section 283(1) of the M25Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992] (norepayment supplement where overdue repayment of capital gains tax less than£25), and
b section 824(1)(a) and (b) and (5) of the Taxes Act 1988 (no repaymentsupplement where overdue repayment of income tax etc. less than £25),
and the words “of not less than £100” in section 825(2) of theTaxes Act 1988 (no repayment supplement where overdue repayment of company taxless than £100) shall cease to have effect.
3 Paragraph (a) of subsection (1) above shall have effect—
a in relation to income tax under Schedule E, where the demand for the taxis made on or after the appointed day, and
b in any other case, where the tax is charged by an assessment notice ofwhich is issued on or after the appointed day.
4 Paragraph (b) of that subsection shall have effect where the tax ischarged by an assessment relating to an accounting period beginning on orafter the appointed day.
5 Subsection (2) above shall have effect in relation to repayments of taxmade on or after the appointed day.
6 In this section “the appointed day” means such day as theTreasury may by order made by statutory instrument appoint; and different daysmay be appointed for different enactments or for different purposes of thesame enactment.

159  Interest on tax in case of failure or error.

1 Section 88 of the M26Taxes Management Act 1970 (intereston tax recovered to make good loss due to taxpayer’s fault) shall be amendedas follows.
2 In subsection (1), for the words “the fraud, wilful default or neglectof any person” there shall be substituted the words—
.
3 The following subsection shall be added at the end—
4 This section shall have effect in relation to failures occurring, anderrors in any information or documents delivered, on or after the day on whichthis Act is passed.

160  Determinations under TMA s. 88.

F1121 In subsection (1) of section 88 of the Taxes Management Act 1970, for thewords “shall carry” there shall be substituted the words “shall, if aninspector or the Board so determine, carry”.
2 The following section shall be inserted after that section—
F4253 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4 In section 113 of that Act (form of documents), the following subsectionshall be inserted after subsection (1B)—
5 In section 114 of that Act (want of form not to invalidate), after theword “assessment”, in each place where it occurs, there shall be insertedthe words “or determination”.
6 In paragraph 5 of Schedule 3 to that Act (rules for assigning proceedingsto Commissioners), the following entry shall be inserted in the first columnafter the entry relating to an appeal against an assessment to capital gainstax— “ An appeal against a determination under section 88 of this Act. ”

161  Tax carrying interest under TMA ss. 86 and 88.

The following subsection shall be substituted for section 88(3) of the M27Taxes Management Act 1970—

Penalties

F426162  Failure to make return.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

163  Incorrect return, accounts etc.

1 In—
F334a . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
b section 96(1) of that Act (incorrect return etc. for corporation tax),
for the words “the aggregate” onwards there shall be substituted thewords “the amount of the difference specified in subsection (2) below.”
2 This section shall apply in relation to returns, statements, declarationsor accounts delivered, made or submitted on or after the day on which this Actis passed.

164  Special returns, information etc.

1 Section 98 of the Taxes Management Act 1970 (special returns, information etc.) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (1) (initial and daily penalties)—
a for the word “Where” there shall be substituted the words “Subject to section 98A below, where”, and
b for the words “subsection (3)” onwards there shall be substituted the words
3 In subsection (2) (maximum penalty for information given fraudulently or negligently)—
a for the word “Where” there shall be substituted the words “Subject to section 98A below, where”, and
b for the words “ £250, or, in the case of fraud, £500”there shall be substituted “ £3,000”.
4 The following subsections shall be substituted for subsection (3)—
5 In the Table—
a in the first column, in the entry relating to Part III of the M28Taxes Management Act 1970, the words “, except sections 16 and 24(2)” shall be omitted;
F386b . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
c the entry relating to section 481(5)(k) of that Act shall be omitted from the first column and an entry relating to section 482(2) of that Act shall be inserted at the appropriate place in the second column.
6 In consequence of the amendment made by subsection (5)(a) above section16(6) of the Taxes Management Act 1970 shall cease to have effect.
7 This section shall apply in relation to—
a any failure to comply with a notice or to furnish information, give a certificate or produce a document or record beginning on or after the day on which this Act is passed, and
b the furnishing, giving, producing or making of any incorrect information, certificate, document, record or declaration on or after that day.

165  Special penalties in the case of certain returns.

1 The following section shall be inserted after section 98 of the TaxesManagement Act 1970—
2 In relation to a failure to make a return beginning before such day as theTreasury may by order made by statutory instrument appoint, section 98A(2)shall have effect with the substitution of the following paragraph forparagraph (a)—
.

166  Assisting in preparation of incorrect return etc.

1 The following section shall be substituted for section 99 of the M29Taxes Management Act 1970—
2 This section shall apply in relation to assistance and inducementsoccurring on or after the day on which this Act is passed.

167  Determination of penalties.

The following sections shall be substituted for section 100 of the M30Taxes Management Act 1970—

168  Amendments consequential on section 167.

1 In consequence of the amendment made by section 167 above the M31Taxes Management Act 1970 shall be amended in accordance withsubsections (2) to (8) below.
2 In section 20A (power to call for papers of tax accountant)—
a in subsection (1), for the words “awarded against him a penalty incurredby” there shall be substituted the words “a penalty imposed on”,
b in subsection (2), for the word “award” in the first place where itoccurs there shall be substituted the word “penalty” and for that wordin the second place where it occurs there shall be substituted the word “imposition”, and
c in subsection (4), for the words “award against” there shall besubstituted the words “imposition on” and for the word “award” thereshall be substituted the word “penalty”.
F1163 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4 In section 102 (mitigation of penalties), for the words “recoverythereof” there shall be substituted the words “a penalty”.
5 In section 105 (evidence)—
a the following paragraph shall be substituted for paragraph (a) ofsubsection (1)—
,
b in paragraph (b) of subsection (2), for the words “sum” onwards thereshall be substituted the words “tax due from him”, and
c after that paragraph there shall be inserted the words
6 In section 112 (loss of documents etc.), the following subsection shallbe added at the end—
7 In section 113 (form of documents)—
a the following subsection shall be inserted after subsection (1C)—
and
b in subsection (3)—
i after the words “Every assessment,” there shall be inserted the words “determination of a penalty,”,
ii after the words “notice of assessment” there shall be inserted thewords “, of determination”, and
iii after the words “levying tax” there shall be inserted the words “ordetermining a penalty”.
8 In paragraph 5 of Schedule 3 (rules for assigning proceedings toCommissioners), for the words “section 100(4)” there shall be substitutedthe words “section 100C or an appeal under section 100B against thedetermination of a penalty”.
9 In section 41 of the M32Development Land Tax Act 1976(administration of development land tax) the following subsection shall beinserted after subsection (1)—

169  Time limits.

1 The following section shall be substituted for section 103 of the M33Taxes Management Act 1970—
2 The amendment made by subsection (1) above shall not affect theapplication of section 103(4) of the M34Taxes Management Act1970 to proceedings under section 100 of that Act as it has effect before theamendment made by section 167 above.

170  Up-rating of certain penalties.

1 In section 23(8) of the Taxes Act 1988 (maximum penalty for agents failing to make certain payments on behalf of principals), for “£50” there shall be substituted “£300”.
F1192 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3233 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4 In—
F305a . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F305b . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
c section 658(5) of that Act (maximum penalty for false statements or representations relating to purchased life annuities),
for “£500” there shall be substituted “£3,000”.
5 In paragraph 2(4) of Schedule 19A to that Act and Schedule 16A to the M35Finance Act 1973 (maximum penalty for incorrect return byLloyd’s agent), for the words “£500 in the case of fraud and £250 in the case of negligence” there shall be substituted “£3,000”.
6 This section shall apply in relation to things done or omitted on or after the day on which this Act is passed.

Part III  Miscellaneous and General

Inheritance tax

171  Gifts to housing associations.

1 The following section shall be inserted in the M36Inheritance Tax Act 1984 after section 24—
2 In section 23(5) of the Inheritance Tax Act 1984 the words “or, where it is land, of a body mentioned in section 24Abelow” shall be added at the end.
3 In section 29(5) of that Act—
a the words “or, where it is land, of a body mentioned in section24A” shall be inserted at the end of paragraph (b), and
b after “24(3) and (4),” there shall be inserted “24A(3),”.
4 In section 161(2)(b)(ii) of that Act after “24,” there shall beinserted “24A,”.
5 In section 102(5) of the M37Finance Act 1986 afterparagraph (e) there shall be inserted—
.
6 This section shall apply to transfers of value made on or after 14th March1989.

172  Abatement of exemption where claim settled out of beneficiary’s ownresources.

1 The following section shall be inserted after section 29 of the M38Inheritance Tax Act 1984—
2 This section shall have effect in relation to deaths occurring on or afterthe day on which this Act is passed.

Stamp duty etc.

173  Insurance: abolition of certain duties.

1 Stamp duty shall not be chargeable under—
a the heading “Policy of Life Insurance” in Schedule 1 tothe M39Stamp Act 1891, or
b paragraph (3) of the heading “Bond, Covenant, or Instrument of any kindwhatsoever” in that Schedule (superannuation annuities).
2 Subject to section 4 of the Stamp Act 1891 (separate charges oninstruments containing or relating to several distinct matters) an instrumentwhich, but for subsection (1) above, would be chargeable with stamp duty underparagraph (3) of the heading mentioned in paragraph (b) of that subsectionshall not be chargeable with stamp duty under any other provision of the StampAct 1891.
3 Section 100 of the Stamp Act 1891 (penalty for not making out policy ormaking policy not duly stamped) shall cease to have effect.
4 Section 118 of the Stamp Act 1891 (assignment of life insurance policy tobe stamped before payment of money assured) shall cease to have effect.
5 Section 47(3) of the M40Finance Act 1966 (enhanced dutywhere policy not exceeding 2 years is varied so as to exceed 2 years) andsection 5(3) of the M41Finance Act (Northern Ireland)1966 (equivalent provision for Northern Ireland) shall cease to have effect.
6 Subsections (1) and (2) above apply to instruments made after 31stDecember 1989.
7 So far as it relates to section 100(1) of the 1891 Act, subsection (3)above applies where a person receives, or takes credit for, a premium orconsideration for insurance after 30th November 1989.
8 So far as it relates to section 100(2) of the 1891 Act, subsection (3)above applies where the policy is made after 31st December 1989.
9 Subsection (4) above applies to instruments of assignment made after 31stDecember 1989.
10 Subsection (5) above applies where the policy is varied after 31stDecember 1989 (whenever it was made).

174 Unit trusts.

F121. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

175 Stamp duty: stock exchange nominees

1 The Treasury may by regulations provide that where —
a circumstances would (apart from the regulations) give rise to a charge to stamp duty under Part I of Schedule 13 to the Finance Act 1999 (conveyance or transfer on sale) and to a charge to stamp duty reserve tax,
b the circumstances involve a stock exchange nominee, and
c the circumstances are such as are prescribed,
the charge to stamp duty shall be treated as not arising.
2 The power to make regulations under this section shall be exercisable by statutory instrument subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of the House of Commons.
3 In this section —
a prescribed” means prescribed by the regulations, and
b stock exchange nominee” means a person designated for the purposes of section 127 of the Finance Act 1976M102 as a nominee of The Stock Exchange by an order made by the Secretary of State under subsection (5) of that section.

176 Stamp duty reserve tax: stock exchange nominees

1 The Treasury may by regulations provide that where —
a circumstances would (apart from the regulations) give rise to two charges to stamp duty reserve tax,
b the circumstances involve a stock exchange nominee, and
c the circumstances are such as are prescribed,
such one of the charges as may be prescribed shall be treated as not arising.
2 The Treasury may by regulations provide that where —
a circumstances would (apart from the regulations) give rise to a charge to stamp duty reserve tax and a charge to stamp duty,
b the circumstances involve a stock exchange nominee, and
c the circumstances are such as are prescribed,
the charge to stamp duty reserve tax shall be treated as not arising.
3 The Treasury may by regulations provide that a provision of an Act by virtue of which there is no charge to stamp duty reserve tax shall also apply in circumstances which involve a stock exchange nominee and are such as are prescribed.
4 The Treasury may by regulations provide that a provision of an Act by virtue of which the rate at which stamp duty reserve tax is charged is less than it would be apart from the provision shall also apply in circumstances which involve a stock exchange nominee and are such as are prescribed.
5 The power to make regulations under this section shall be exercisable by statutory instrument subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of the House of Commons.
6 In this section —
a prescribed” means prescribed by the regulations, and
b stock exchange nominee” means a person designated for the purposes of section 127 of the Finance Act 1976M103 as a nominee of The Stock Exchange by an order made by the Secretary of State under subsection (5) of that section.

177 Stamp duty reserve tax: information.

— Regulations under section 98(1) of the Finance Act 1986M104 (administration etc. of stamp duty reserve tax) may include —
a provision that notice which the regulations require to be given to the Commissioners of Inland Revenue shall be given in a manner or form specified by the Commissioners;
b provision that information which the regulations require to be supplied to the Commissioners shall be supplied in a manner or form specified by the Commissioners.

Interest etc.

C18C51C50C55C54C57C58C59178  Setting of rates of interest.

C191 The rate of interest applicable for the purposes of an enactment to which this section applies shall be the rate which for the purposes of that enactment is provided for by regulations made by the Treasury under this section.
2 This section applies to—
aa section 15A of the Stamp Act 1891;
a section 8(9) of the M42Finance Act 1894,
b section 18 of the M43Finance Act 1896,
c section 61(5) of the M44Finance (1909-10) Act 1910,
d section 17(3) of the M45Law of Property Act 1925,
F271e . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
f sections F394... 86, 86A, 87, 87A, 88, 103A of the M46Taxes Management Act 1970,
g paragraph 3 of Schedule 16A to the M47Finance Act 1973,
ga section 48(1) of the Finance Act 1975,
gg paragraph 6 of Schedule 1 to the Social Security Contributions and Benefits Act 1992,
gh section 71(8A) of the M48 Social Security Administration Act 1992, and section 69(8A) of the M49 Social Security Administration (Northern Ireland) Act 1992, as they have effect in any case where the overpayment was made in respect of working families’ tax credit or disabled person’s tax credit;
h paragraphs 15 and 16 of Schedule 2, and paragraph 8 of Schedule 5, to the M50Oil Taxation Act 1975,
i section 283 of the M51Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992;
j paragraph 59 of Schedule 8 to the M52Development Land Tax Act 1976,
k sections 233 , 235(1) and 236(3) and (4) of the M53Inheritance Tax Act 1984,
l section 92 of the Finance Act 1986, and
m sections F130. . . F245... 824, 825 and 826 of, and paragraph 6B of Schedule 3 to and paragraph 3 of Schedule 19A to, the M54Taxes Act 1988. and
F133n . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . and
o section 14(4) of the Ports Act 1991.
p paragraph 8 of Schedule 4 to the Tax Credits Act 1999., F246...
q section 110 of the Finance Act 1999.
q paragraph 8 of Schedule 1 to the Employment Act 2002.
r paragraph 8 of Schedule I to the Employment (Northern Ireland) Order 2002., and
s Chapter 7 of Part 3 of the Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003.
t sections 87, 88 and 89 of the Finance Act 2003, F430...
F438u . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F448...
F457v . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
w sections 67 and 68 of the Finance Act 2020.
x paragraphs 33 and 33A of Schedule 14 to the Finance (No.2) Act 2023.
y paragraphs 33 and 33A of Schedule 14 to the Finance (No.2) Act 2023, as applied in relation to domestic top-up tax by paragraph 4 of Schedule 18 to that Act.
3 Regulations under this section may—
a make different provision for different enactments or for different purposes of the same enactment,
b either themselves specify a rate of interest for the purposes of an enactment or make provision for any such rate to be determined by reference to such rate or the average of such rates as may be referred to in the regulations,
c provide for rates to be reduced below, or increased above, what they otherwise would be by specified amounts or by reference to specified formulae,
d provide for rates arrived at by reference to averages to be rounded up or down,
e provide for circumstances in which alteration of a rate of interest is or is not to take place, and
f provide that rates or alterations of rates are to have effect for periods beginning on or after a day determined in accordance with the regulations in relation to interest running from before that day as well as from or from after that day.
4 The power to make regulations under this section shall be exercisable by statutory instrument which shall be subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of the House of Commons.
F3705 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3876 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F439C207 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

179  Provisions consequential on section 178.

1 The words “rate applicable under section 178 of the Finance Act 1989”shall be substituted—
a for the words from “rate” to “annum” in—
i section 18(1) of the M55 Finance Act 1896,
ii section 61(5) of the M56 Finance (1909-10) Act 1910,
iii section 17(3) of the M57 Law of Property Act 1925,
F272iv . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
v paragraphs 15(1) and 16 of Schedule 2, and paragraph 8(4) of Schedule 5,to the M58 Oil Taxation Act 1975,
F139vi . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
vii sections 824(1) and 825(2) of the Taxes Act 1988,
b for the words“ prescribed rate” in—
i sections 86(1), 86A(1), 87(1), 87A(1) F437... and 88(1) of the M59 Taxes Management Act 1970,
ii paragraph 3(4) of Schedule 16A to the M60 Finance Act1973, and
iii paragraph 3(4) of Schedule 19A to the Taxes Act 1988,
c for the words “rate which” onwards in—
i paragraph 59(1) of Schedule 8 to the M61 Development LandTax Act 1976, and
ii section 826(1) of the Taxes Act 1988,
d for the words “rate applicable under subsection (2) below” in section233(1) of the M62 Inheritance Tax Act 1984,
e for the words “rate for the time being applicable under section233(2)(b) above” in subsection (3), and the words “rate for the timebeing applicable under section 233(2)(a) above” in subsection (4), ofsection 236 of that Act,
f for the words “appropriate rate” in section 92(2) of the M63 Finance Act 1986, and
F247g . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
2 In section 8(9) of the M64 Finance Act 1894, for thewords from “such interest” to “per cent.” there shall be substitutedthe words “interest at such rate not exceeding that applicable under section178 of the Finance Act 1989”.
3 In section 236(4) of the Inheritance Tax Act 1984, for the words “as ifsection 233(1)(b) above had applied” there shall be substituted the words “from the end of the period mentioned in section 233(1)(b) above”.
4 Any amendment made by subsection (1), (2) or (3) above shall have effect in relation to any period for which section 178(1) above has effect for thepurposes of the enactment concerned.
F2485 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

180  Repayment interest: period of accrual.

1 In section 48(1) of the M65 Finance Act 1975, after thewords “carry interest” there shall be inserted the words “from the dateon which the sums were paid until the order for repayment is issued”.
2 In—
a paragraph 16 of Schedule 2 to the M66 Oil Taxation Act1975,
b section 105(7) of the M67 Finance Act 1980,
c paragraph 13(4) and (5) of Schedule 16 to the M68 FinanceAct 1981, and
d paragraph 10(4) of Schedule 19 to the M69 Finance Act1982,
for the word “repayment” there shall be substituted the words “theorder for repayment is issued”.
3 In paragraph 59(1) of Schedule 8 to the M70 DevelopmentLand Tax Act 1976, after the word “later,” there shall be inserted thewords “until the order for repayment is issued”.
4 In section 235(1) of the M71 Inheritance Tax Act 1984(and paragraph 19(3) of Schedule 4 to the M72 Finance Act1975), after the word “made” there shall be inserted the words “untilthe order for repayment is issued”.
5 In section 92(2) of the M73 Finance Act 1986, for thewords “the time it was paid” there shall be substituted the words “thedate on which the payment was made until the order for repayment isissued”.
6 In section 826(1) of the Taxes Act 1988, for the words “that repaymentor payment is made” there shall be substituted the words “the order forrepayment or payment is issued”.
7 The amendments made by this section shall be deemed always to have hadeffect.

Miscellaneous

181  Broadcasting: additional payments by programme contractors.

1 M74The Broadcasting Act 1981 shall have effect withrespect to additional payments payable by programme contractors under that Actsubject to the amendments made by Part I, and with the substitution, forSchedule 4 to that Act, of the provisions contained in Part II, of Schedule16 to this Act.
2 The transitional provisions made by Part III of that Schedule shall haveeffect.
3 This section shall come into force on 1st January 1990.

C21C47C46182  Disclosure of information.

1 A person who discloses any information which he holds or has held in the exercise of tax functions , tax credit functions , child trust fund functionsor social security functions is guilty of an offence if it is information about any matter relevant, for the purposes of any of those functions—
a to tax or duty in the case of any identifiable person,
aa to a tax credit in respect of any identifiable person,
ab to a child trust fund of any identifiable person,
b to contributions payable by or in respect of any identifiable person, or
c to statutory sick pay , statutory maternity pay, statutory paternity pay, statutory adoption pay , statutory shared parental pay , statutory parental bereavement pay or statutory neonatal care pay in respect of any identifiable person.
2 In this section “tax functions” means functions relating to tax or duty—
a of the Commissioners, the Board and their officers,
b of any person carrying out the administrative work of the First-tier Tribunal or Upper Tribunal, and
c of any other person providing, or employed in the provision of, services to any person mentioned in paragraph (a) or (b) above.
2ZA In this section “tax credit functions” means the functions relating to tax credits—
a of the Board,
b of any person carrying out the administrative work of the the First-tier Tribunal or Upper Tribunal, and
c of any other person providing, or employed in the provision of, services to the Board or to any person mentioned in paragraph (b) above.
C49C482ZB In this section “child trust fund functions” means the functions relating to child trust funds—
a of the Board and their officers,
b of any person carrying out the administrative work of the First-tier Tribunal or an appeal tribunal constituted under Chapter 1 of Part 2 of the Social Security (Northern Ireland) Order 1998, or
c of any person providing, or employed in the provision of, services to the Board or any person mentioned in paragraph (b) above.
2A In this section “social security functions” means—
a the functions relating to contributions, child benefit, guardian’s allowance, statutory sick pay , statutory maternity pay, statutory paternity pay, statutory adoption pay , statutory shared parental pay , statutory parental bereavement pay or statutory neonatal care pay
i of the Board and their officers,
ii of any person carrying out the administrative work of the the First-tier Tribunal or Upper Tribunal, and
iii of any other person providing, or employed in the provision of, services to any person mentioned in sub-paragraph (i) or (ii) above, and
b the functions under Part III of the Pension Schemes Act 1993 or Part III of the Pension Schemes (Northern Ireland) Act 1993 of the Board and their officers and any other person providing, or employed in the provision of, services to the Board or their officers.
F3633 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4 A person who discloses any information which—
a he holds or has held in the exercise of functions—
i of the Comptroller Auditor General , of the National Audit Office and any member or employee of that Office or of any member of the staff of the National Audit Office that was established by section 3 of the National Audit Act 1983, F147. . .
ia of the Comptroller and Auditor General for Northern Ireland and any member of the staff of the Northern Ireland Audit Office,
ii of the Parliamentary Commissioner for Administration and his officers,
iii of the Auditor General for Wales and any member of his staff, F273...
iiia of the Wales Audit Office and any member or employee of that Office,
iv of the Public Services Ombudsman for Wales and any member of his staff, or
v of the Scottish Public Services Ombudsman and any member of his staff,
b is, or is derived from, information which was held by any person in the exercise of tax functions , tax credit functions , child trust fund functions or social security functions, and
c is information about any matter relevant, for the purposes of tax functions , tax credit functions , child trust fund functions or social security functions—
i to tax or duty in the case of any identifiable person,
ia to a tax credit in respect of any identifiable person,
ib to a child trust fund of any identifiable person,
ii to contributions payable by or in respect of any identifiable person, or
iii to child benefit, guardian’s allowance, statutory sick pay , statutory maternity pay, statutory paternity pay, statutory adoption pay , statutory shared parental pay , statutory parental bereavement pay or statutory neonatal care pay in respect of any identifiable person
is guilty of an offence.
5 Subsections (1) and (4) above do not apply to any disclosure of information—
a with lawful authority,
b with the consent of any person in whose case the information is about a matter relevant to tax or duty , to a tax credit or to a child trust fund or to contributions, statutory sick pay , statutory maternity pay, statutory paternity pay, statutory adoption pay , statutory shared parental pay , statutory parental bereavement pay or statutory neonatal care pay, or
c which has been lawfully made available to the public before the disclosure is made.
6 For the purposes of this section a disclosure of any information is made with lawful authority if, and only if, it is made—
a by a Crown servant in accordance with his official duty,
b by any other person for the purposes of the function in the exercise of which he holds the information and without contravening any restriction dulyimposed by the person responsible,
c to, or in accordance with an authorisation duly given by, the person responsible,
d in pursuance of any enactment or of any order of a court, or
e in connection with the institution of or otherwise for the purposes of any proceedings relating to any matter within the general responsibility of the Commissioners or, as the case requires, the Board,
and in this subsection “the person responsible” means the Commissioners, the Board, the Comptroller and Auditor General, the Comptroller and Auditor General for Northern Ireland , the Parliamentary Commissioner, the Auditor General for Wales , the Public Services Ombudsman for Wales or the Scottish Public Services Ombudsman, as the case requires.
7 It is a defence for a person charged with an offence under this section to prove that at the time of the alleged offence—
a he believed that he had lawful authority to make the disclosure in question and had no reasonable cause to believe otherwise, or
b he believed that the information in question had been lawfully made available to the public before the disclosure was made and had no reasonablecause to believe otherwise.
8 A person guilty of an offence under this section is liable—
a on conviction on indictment, to imprisonment for a term not exceeding two years or a fine or both, and
b on summary conviction, to imprisonment for a term not exceeding six months or a fine not exceeding the statutory maximum or both.
9 No prosecution for an offence under this section shall be instituted in England and Wales or in Northern Ireland except—
a by the Commissioners or the Board, as the case requires, or
b by or with the consent of the Director of Public Prosecutions or, in Northern Ireland, the Director of Public Prosecutions for Northern Ireland.
10 In this section—
  • the Board” means the Commissioners of Inland Revenue,
  • child trust fund” has the same meaning as in the Child Trust Funds Act 2004,
  • the Commissioners” means the Commissioners of Customs and Excise,
  • contributions” means contributions under Part I of the Social Security Contributions and Benefits Act 1992 or Part I of the Social Security Contributions and Benefits (Northern Ireland) Act 1992;
  • Crown servant” has the same meaning as in the M75 Official Secrets Act 1989,
  • “tax credit” means a tax credit under the Tax Credits Act 2002, and
  • tax or duty” means any tax or duty within the general responsibility of the Commissioners or the Board.
10A In this section, in relation to the disclosure of information “identifiable person” means a person whose identity is specified in the disclosure or can be deduced from it.
11 In this section—
F399a . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F399b . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
c references to the Parliamentary Commissioner for Administration include the Health Service Commissioner for EnglandF296... , F276... the Assembly Ombudsman for Northern Ireland and the Northern Ireland Commissioner for Complaints.
11A In this section, references to statutory paternity pay, statutory adoption pay , statutory shared parental pay , statutory parental bereavement pay or statutory neonatal care pay include statutory pay under Northern Ireland legislation corresponding to Part 12ZA , Part 12ZB , Part 12ZC , Part 12ZD or Part 12ZE of the Social Security Contributions and Benefits Act 1992 (c. 4).
12 This section shall come into force on the repeal of section 2 of the M76 Official Secrets Act 1911.

182A F158Double taxation: disclosure of information.

1 A person who discloses any information acquired by him in the exercise of his functions as a member of an advisory commission set up under the Arbitration Convention is guilty of an offence.
2 Subsection (1) above does not apply to any disclosure of information—
a with the consent of the person who supplied the information to the commission, or
b which has been lawfully made available to the public before the disclosure is made.
3 It is a defence for a person charged with an offence under this section to prove that at the time of the alleged offence he believed that the information in question had been lawfully made available to the public before the disclosure was made and had no reasonable cause to believe otherwise.
4 A person guilty of an offence under this section is liable—
a on conviction on indictment, to imprisonment for a term not exceeding two years or a fine or both;
b on summary conviction, to imprisonment for a term not exceeding six months or a fine not exceeding the statutory maximum or both.
5 No prosecution for an offence under this section shall be instituted in England and Wales or in Northern Ireland except—
a by the Board, or
b by or with the consent of the Director of Public Prosecutions or, in Northern Ireland, the Director of Public Prosecutions for Northern Ireland.
6 In this section—
  • the Arbitration Convention” has the meaning given by section 126 of the Taxation (International and Other Provisions) Act 2010;
  • the Board” means the Commissioners of Inland Revenue.

183  Government securities: redemption and transfer.

1 In section 47 of the M77 Finance Act 1942 (power to makeregulations about transfer and registration of Government stock)—
a the following paragraph shall be inserted after paragraph (b) ofsubsection (1)—
and
b the following subsection shall be inserted after that subsection—
2 In section 3(1) of the M78 National Debt Act 1972 (powerto make regulations about stock on the National Savings Stock Register) thefollowing paragraph shall be inserted after paragraph (b)—
.
3 After section 14 of the M79 National Loans Act 1968 thereshall be inserted—

184  National savings accounts.

1 In section 2 of the M80National Savings Bank Act 1971(general power to make regulations) after subsection (1) there shall beinserted—
2 In section 5 of that Act (interest on ordinary deposits) in subsection (1)for the words from the beginning to “in any ordinary deposit account”there shall be substituted “The Director of Savings may, with the consentof the Treasury, from time to time determine the rate or rates at whichinterest is to be payable on amounts deposited in ordinary accounts or thatno interest is to be payable on such amounts, and any such determination inrelation to amounts deposited in any ordinary deposit account may be made”.
3 After subsection (1) of section 5 of that Act there shall beinserted—
4 Subsection (5) of section 5 of that Act (rate of interest on ordinarydeposits to be not less than 2.5 per cent per annum) shall cease to haveeffect.
5 Subsections (2) and (3) above shall come into force on 1st October 1989.

F277185  Winding up of Redemption Annuities Account.

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

General

186  Interpretation etc.

1 In this Act “the Taxes Act 1970” means the M81Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1970 and “the Taxes Act1988” means the M82Income and Corporation Taxes Act1988.
2 Chapter II of Part I of this Act shall be construed as one with the M83Value Added Tax Act 1983.
3 Part II of this Act, so far as it relates to capital gains tax, shall beconstrued as one with the M84Capital Gains Tax Act 1979.

187  Repeals.

1 The enactments specified in Schedule 17 to this Act (which includeunnecessary enactments) are hereby repealed to the extent specified in thethird column of that Schedule, but subject to any provision at the end of anyPart of that Schedule.
C222 The repeal of the enactments specified in Part XIV of Schedule 17 shallcome into force on such day as the Treasury may appoint by order made bystatutory instrument; and different days may be appointed for differentenactments.

188  Short title.

This Act may be cited as the Finance Act 1989.

SCHEDULES

SCHEDULE 1 

Vehicles Excise Duty: Rates

Section 6.

F159Part I 

Part II F160 

SCHEDULE 2 

Vehicles Excise Duty: Special Machines

Section 8.

F1611. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F1622. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3F163
F1644. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F165SCHEDULE 3 

Zero-rating

1 

For Group 8 (construction of buildings etc.) of Schedule 5 (zero-rating)to the M92Value Added Tax Act 1983 there shall besubstituted—

2 

1 Group 8A (protected buildings) of that Schedule shall be amended asfollows.
2 In item 1, for the word “granting” there shall be substituted theword “grant”.
3 In Note (1), for the words “a building which” there shall besubstituted the words “a building which is designed to remain as or becomea dwelling or number of dwellings or is intended for use solely for a relevantresidential purpose or a relevant charitable purpose after the reconstructionor alteration and which, in either case,”.
4 After that Note there shall be inserted—
5 Note (5) shall be omitted.
6 After Note (6) there shall be inserted—
7 The following Note shall be substituted for Note (7)—

3 

In Group 11 (caravans and houseboats) of that Schedule, for paragraph (b)of the Note there shall be substituted—

Exemptions

4 

1 For Group 1 (land) of Schedule 6 (exemptions) to the M93Value Added Tax Act 1983 there shall be substituted—
2 In consequence of the amendment made by sub-paragraph (1) above, inparagraph 9(1) of Schedule 4 to the M94Value Added Tax Act1983 for “(a)” there shall be substituted “(c)”.

Other provisions

5 

The following section shall be substituted for section 21 (refund of taxto person constructing dwelling) of the Value Added Tax Act 1983—

6 

1 The following section shall be inserted in the M95ValueAdded Tax Act 1983 after section 35—
2 The following Schedule shall be inserted in the Value Added Tax Act 1983after Schedule 6—

7 

In section 42 (adjustment of consideration on changes in tax) of the M96Value Added Tax Act 1983—
a the following subsection shall be inserted after subsection (1)—
, and
b in subsection (2), the words “(including a change attributable tothe making of an election under paragraph 2 of Schedule 6A to thisAct)” shall be added at the end.

8 

In section 45(4) (orders etc.) of the M97Value Added TaxAct 1983, there shall be added after paragraph (c)—

9 

In section 48 (interpretation) of the Value Added Tax Act 1983, after thedefinition of “Commissioners” there shall be inserted—
.

10 

In Schedule 1 (registration) to the Value Added Tax Act 1983—
a in paragraph 1 there shall be added at the end—
, and
b in paragraph 2 there shall be added at the end—

11 

In Schedule 2 (supplies of goods and services) to the Value Added Tax Act1983—
a in paragraph 4, for the word “granting” there shall be substitutedthe word “grant”,
b in paragraph 5(1), for the words “the goods” there shall besubstituted the word “goods”, and
c there shall be added at the end—

Commencement

12 

1 Subject to sub-paragraphs (2) and (3) and paragraph 13 below, theamendments made by paragraphs 1 to 4 of this Schedule shall have effect inrelation to grants, assignments and other supplies made on or after 1st April1989.
2 Note 4(b) to Group 8 of Schedule 5 to the M98Value AddedTax Act 1983 shall have effect in relation to grants, assignments and othersupplies made on or after 1st August 1989.
3 In relation to grants and assignments made on or after 1st April 1989 butbefore 1st August 1989—
a that Group shall have effect as if the Notes to it included a Note in thesame terms as Note (1) to that Group as it had effect before the substitutionmade by paragraph 1 above, and
b Group 8A of that Schedule shall have effect as if the Notes to it includeda Note in the same terms as Note (5) to that Group as it had effect before theamendments made by paragraph 2 above.
4 Paragraphs 5, 7, 8, 11 and 13(6) and (7) of this Schedule and paragraph6, so far as relating to section 35A(2) of, and paragraphs 2 to 7 of Schedule6A to, the Value Added Tax Act 1983, shall come into force on 1st August 1989.
5 Subject to the preceding provisions of this paragraph, this Schedule shallcome into force on 1st April 1989.

13 

1 Subject to sub-paragraph (3) below, the amendments made by paragraphs 1and 2 of this Schedule shall not have effect in relation to a grant,assignment or other supply where—
a it is made in pursuance of a legally binding obligation to make it whichwas incurred before 21st June 1988, and
b if the Commissioners so require (whether before or after it is made), itis proved to their satisfaction by the production of documents made beforethat date that it is so made.
2 Subject to sub-paragraph (3) below, the amendments made by paragraphs 1and 2 of this Schedule shall not have effect in relation to a grant orassignment of an interest in, or in any part of, a building or its sitewhere—
a the grant or assignment takes place before 21st June 1993,
b the person making the grant or assignment was under a legally bindingobligation incurred before 21st June 1988 to construct (or reconstruct) thebuilding or to construct any development of which it forms part (other thanan obligation to receive services or goods in the course of the constructionor reconstruction),
c if the Commissioners so require (whether before or after the grant orassignment is made), it is proved to their satisfaction by the production ofdocuments made before that date that he was under that obligation, and
d planning permission for the construction (or reconstruction) of thebuilding was granted before 21st June 1988.
3 Where the grant or assignment is of a tenancy or lease—
a if a premium is payable, sub-paragraph (1) or (2) above shall apply onlyto the extent that it is made for consideration in the form of the premium;and
b if a premium is not payable, sub-paragraph (1) or (2) above shall applyonly to the extent that it is made for consideration in the form of the firstpayment of rent due under the tenancy or lease.
4 The amendments made by paragraphs 1 and 2 of this Schedule shall not haveeffect in relation to a supply relating to a building or civil engineeringwork where—
a the supply takes place before 21st June 1993,
b the supply is made to the person constructing the building or work (orreconstructing the building),
c that person was under a legally binding obligation incurred before21st June 1988 to construct the building or work (or to reconstruct thebuilding) or to construct any development of which it forms part (other thanan obligation to receive services or goods in the course of the constructionor reconstruction),
d if the Commissioners so require (whether before or after the supply ismade), it is proved to their satisfaction by the production of documents madebefore that date that he was under that obligation,
e planning permission for the construction of the building or work (or thereconstruction of the building) was granted before 21st June 1988, and
f before the supply takes place the person constructing the building or work(or reconstructing the building) has given to the person making the supply acertificate in such form as may be specified in a notice published by theCommissioners stating that the supply is zero-rated (in whole or to the extentspecified in the certificate) by virtue of this sub-paragraph.
5 Where a grant, assignment or other supply is zero-rated by virtue of thisparagraph, it is not a relevant zero-rated supply for the purposes ofparagraph 1 of Schedule 6A to the M99Value Added Tax Act1983.
6 Nothing in paragraphs 5 and 6 of that Schedule shall apply—
a in relation to a person who has constructed a building if he incurredbefore 21st June 1988 a legally binding obligation to make a grant orassignment of a major interest in, or in any part of, the building or itssite;
b in relation to a building or work if there was incurred before that datea legally binding obligation to make in relation to the building or work asupply within item 2 of Group 8 of Schedule 5 to the Value Added Tax Act 1983;
c in relation to a person who has constructed a building if—
i he incurred before that date a legally binding obligation to construct thebuilding or any development of which it forms part, and
ii planning permission for the construction of the building was grantedbefore that date,
except where that person does not make a grant or assignment of a majorinterest in, or in any part of, the building or its site before 21st June1993.
7 If the Commissioners so require, proof of any of the matters specified insub-paragraph (6)(a), (b) or (c)(i) above shall be given to their satisfactionby the production of documents made before 21st June 1988.

F166SCHEDULE 4 

1 

The Taxes Act 1988 shall be amended in accordance with the followingprovisions of this Schedule.

2 

1 In section 171(4) (limit on pay of which half may be exempt from tax) for “£3,000” there shall be substituted “£4,000”.
2 This paragraph shall have effect in relation to profit-related pay paidby reference to profit periods beginning on or after 1st April 1989.

3 

After section 177 there shall be inserted—

4 

1 Section 178 (cancellation of registration) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (1) for the words “subsection (5)” there shall besubstituted the words “subsections (5) and (5A)”.
3 After subsection (3) there shall be inserted—
4 After subsection (5) there shall be inserted—

5 

At the end of section 179 (recovery of tax) there shall be added—

6 

At the end of section 180 (annual returns) there shall be added—

7 

At the end of section 181 (information) there shall be added—

8 

1 Section 182 (appeals) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (1) after paragraph (b) there shall be inserted—
.
3 After subsection (1) there shall be inserted—
4 In subsection (2) for the words “scheme employer” there shall besubstituted the word “appellant”.

9 

1 Paragraph 7 of Schedule 8 (no payments for employees with materialinterest in company) shall be amended as follows.
2 In sub-paragraph (1), the words “, or is an associate of a person who has,” shall be omitted.
3 In sub-paragraph (3), after the words “section 417(3) and (4)” thereshall be inserted the words “, but subject to sub-paragraph (4) below”.
4 The following sub-paragraphs shall be added at the end—

10 

1 Paragraphs 13(2) and 14(2) of Schedule 8 (which provide for a scheme’sdistributable pool to be at least 5 per cent. of the pay of all the employeesto whom the scheme relates if profits remain unchanged) shall be omitted.
2 In consequence of sub-paragraph (1) above—
a the following provisions shall be omitted—
  • section 175(3);
  • in section 176(1), the words “(but not more than six months)”;
  • section 178(2)(b);
  • in paragraph 13(1) of Schedule 8, the word “fixed”;
  • paragraph 13(3) of that Schedule;
  • paragraph 14(7) of that Schedule.
b in paragraph 13 of Schedule 8—
i after sub-paragraph (1) there shall be inserted—
;
ii in sub-paragraph (4)(a), for the words “the base year referred to insub-paragraph (3) above” there shall be substituted the words “a baseyear specified in the scheme”;
iii in sub-paragraph (5), for the words “must be” onwards there shall besubstituted the words “must not exceed the profits for a base year specifiedin the scheme”;
iv for sub-paragraph (6), there shall be substituted—
;
c in paragraph 14(5) of that Schedule, for the words “must be” onwardsthere shall be substituted the words “must not exceed the profits in theperiod of 12 months immediately preceding the first or only profit period towhich the scheme relates”.

11 

At the end of paragraph 13 of Schedule 8 (calculation of distributablepool by method A) there shall be added—

12 

In paragraph 14 of Schedule 8 (calculation of distributable pool by methodB), in sub-paragraph (5) the words “specified in, or” shall be omitted.

13 

At the end of paragraph 14 of Schedule 8 there shall be added—

14 

1 Paragraph 19 of Schedule 8 (profit and loss account for purposes ofprofit-related pay scheme) shall be amended as follows.
2 After sub-paragraph (4) (account to make no allowance for remuneration ofpersons excluded from scheme) there shall be inserted—
3 In sub-paragraph (6) (items which may be left out of account in arrivingat profits or losses) for paragraph (f) there shall be substituted—
.

15 

After paragraph 20 of Schedule 8 there shall be inserted—

C40 SCHEDULE 5 

Employee Share Ownership Trusts

Section 74.

Qualifying trusts

C231A trust is a qualifying employee share ownership trust at the time it isestablished if the conditions set out in paragraphs 2 to 11 below aresatisfied in relation to the trust at that time.

General

C242
1 The trust must be established under a deed (the trust deed).
2 The trust must be established by a company (the founding company) which,at the time the trust is established, is resident in the United Kingdom andnot controlled by another company.

Trustees

C253
1 The trust deed must provide for the establishment of a body of trustees.
2 The trust deed must—
a appoint the initial trustees;
b contain rules for the retirement and removal of trustees;
c contain rules for the appointment of replacement and additional trustees.
3 The trust deed must provide that at any time while the trust subsists (therelevant time)—
a the number of trustees must not be less than three;
b all the trustees must be resident in the United Kingdom;
C26C56c the trustees must include one person who is a trust corporation, asolicitor, or a member of such other professional body as the Board may fromtime to time allow for the purposes of this paragraph;
d most of the trustees must be persons who are not and have never beendirectors of any company which falls within the founding company’s group atthe relevant time;
e most of the trustees must be persons who are employees of companies whichfall within the founding company’s group at the relevant time, and who do nothave and have never had a material interest in any such company;
f the trustees falling within paragraph (e) above must, before beingappointed as trustees, have been selected by a majority of the employees ofthe companies falling within the founding company’s group at the time of theselection or by persons elected to represent those employees.
4 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (3) above a company falls within thefounding company’s group at a particular time if—
a it is the founding company, or
b it is at that time resident in the United Kingdom and controlled by thefounding company.
5 This paragraph applies in relation to trusts established on or before the day on which the Finance Act 1994 was passed.
3AWhere a trust is established after the day on which the Finance Act 1994 was passed, the trust deed must make provision as mentioned in one of paragraphs (a) to (c) below—
a provision for the establishment of a body of trustees and complying with paragraph 3(2) to (4) above;
b provision for the establishment of a body of trustees and complying with paragraph 3B(2) to (9) below;
c provision that at any time while the trust subsists there must be a single trustee.
F1693B
1 The following are the provisions that must be complied with under paragraph 3A(b) above.
2 The trust deed must—
a appoint the initial trustees;
b contain rules for the retirement and removal of trustees;
c contain rules for the appointment of replacement and additional trustees.
3 The trust deed must be so framed that at any time while the trust subsists the conditions set out in sub-paragraph (4) below are fulfilled as regards the persons who are then trustees; and in that sub-paragraph “the relevant time” means that time.
4 The conditions are that—
a the number of trustees is not less than three;
b all the trustees are resident in the United Kingdom;
c the trustees include at least one person who is a professional trustee and at least two persons who are non-professional trustees;
d at least half of the non-professional trustees were, before being appointed as trustees, selected in accordance with sub-paragraph (7) or (8) below;
e all the trustees so selected are persons who are employees of companies which fall within the founding company’s group at the relevant time, and who do not have and have never had a material interest in any such company.
5 For the purposes of this paragraph a trustee is a professional trustee at a particular time if—
a the trustee is then a trust corporation, a solicitor, or a member of such other professional body as the Board may at that time allow for the purposes of this sub-paragraph,
b the trustee is not then an employee or director of any company then falling within the founding company’s group, and
c the trustee meets the requirements of sub-paragraph (6) below;
and for the purposes of this paragraph a trustee is a non-professional trustee at a particular time if the trustee is not then a professional trustee for those purposes.
6 A trustee meets the requirements of this sub-paragraph if—
a he was appointed as an initial trustee and, before being appointed as trustee, was selected by (and only by) the persons who later became the non-professional initial trustees, or
b he was appointed as a replacement or additional trustee and, before being appointed as trustee, was selected by (and only by) the persons who were the non-professional trustees at the time of the selection.
7 Trustees are selected in accordance with this sub-paragraph if the process of selection is one under which—
a all the persons who are employees of the companies which fall within the founding company’s group at the time of the selection, and who do not have and have never had a material interest in any such company, are (so far as is reasonably practicable) given the opportunity to stand for selection,
b all the employees of the companies falling within the founding company’s group at the time of the selection are (so far as is reasonably practicable) given the opportunity to vote, and
c persons gaining more votes are preferred to those gaining less.
8 Trustees are selected in accordance with this sub-paragraph if they are selected by persons elected to represent the employees of the companies falling within the founding company’s group at the time of the selection.
9 For the purposes of this paragraph a company falls within the founding company’s group at a particular time if—
a it is at that time resident in the United Kingdom, and
b it is the founding company or it is at that time controlled by the founding company.
F1703C
1 This paragraph applies where the trust deed provides that at any time while the trust subsists there must be a single trustee.
2 The trust deed must—
a be so framed that at any time while the trust subsists the trustee is a company which at that time is resident in the United Kingdom and controlled by the founding company;
b appoint the initial trustee;
c contain rules for the removal of any trustee and for the appointment of a replacement trustee.
3 The trust deed must be so framed that at any time while the trust subsists the company which is then the trustee is a company so constituted that the conditions set out in sub-paragraph (4) below are then fulfilled as regards the persons who are then directors of the company; and in that sub-paragraph “the relevant time” is that time and “the trust company” is that company.
4 The conditions are that—
a the number of directors is not less than three;
b all the directors are resident in the United Kingdom;
c the directors include at least one person who is a professional director and at least two persons who are non-professional directors;
d at least half of the non-professional directors were, before being appointed as directors, selected in accordance with sub-paragraph (7) or (8) below;
e all the directors so selected are persons who are employees of companies which fall within the founding company’s group at the relevant time, and who do not have and have never had a material interest in any such company.
5 For the purposes of this paragraph a director is a professional director at a particular time if—
a the director is then a solicitor or a member of such other professional body as the Board may at that time allow for the purposes of this sub-paragraph,
b the director is not then an employee of any company then falling within the founding company’s group,
c the director is not then a director of any such company (other than the trust company), and
d the director meets the requirements of sub-paragraph (6) below;
and for the purposes of this paragraph a director is a non-professional director at a particular time if the director is not then a professional director for those purposes.
6 A director meets the requirements of this sub-paragraph if—
a he was appointed as an initial director and, before being appointed as director, was selected by (and only by) the persons who later became the non-professional initial directors, or
b he was appointed as a replacement or additional director and, before being appointed as director, was selected by (and only by) the persons who were the non-professional directors at the time of the selection.
7 Directors are selected in accordance with this sub-paragraph if the process of selection is one under which—
a all the persons who are employees of the companies which fall within the founding company’s group at the time of the selection, and who do not have and have never had a material interest in any such company, are (so far as is reasonably practicable) given the opportunity to stand for selection,
b all the employees of the companies falling within the founding company’s group at the time of the selection are (so far as is reasonably practicable) given the opportunity to vote, and
c persons gaining more votes are preferred to those gaining less.
8 Directors are selected in accordance with this sub-paragraph if they are selected by persons elected to represent the employees of the companies falling within the founding company’s group at the time of the selection.
9 For the purposes of this paragraph a company falls within the founding company’s group at a particular time if—
a it is at that time resident in the United Kingdom, and
b it is the founding company or it is at that time controlled by the founding company.

Beneficiaries

C274
1 The trust deed must contain provision as to the beneficiaries under thetrust, in accordance with the following rules.
2 The trust deed must provide that a person is a beneficiary at a particulartime (the relevant time) if—
a he is at the relevant time an employee or director of a company which atthat time falls within the founding company’s group,
b at each given time in a qualifying period he was an employee or directorof a company falling within the founding company’s group at that given time,and
c in the case of a director, at that given time he worked as a director of the companyconcerned at the rate of at least 20 hours a week (ignoring such matters asholidays and sickness).
2A The trust deed may provide that a person is a beneficiary at a given time if at that time he is eligible to participate in an SAYE option scheme
a which was established by a company within the founding company’s group, and
b which is approved under Schedule 3 to the Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003.
F1722B Where a trust deed contains a rule conforming with sub-paragraph (2A) above it must provide that the only powers and duties which the trustees may exercise in relation to persons who are beneficiaries by virtue only of that rule are those which may be exercised in accordance with the provisions of a scheme such as is mentioned in that sub-paragraph.
3 The trust deed may provide that a person is a beneficiary at a particulartime (the relevant time) if—
a he has at each given time in a qualifying period been an employee ordirector of a company falling within the founding company’s group at thatgiven time,
b he has ceased to be an employee or director of the company or the companyhas ceased to fall within that group, and
c at the relevant time a period of not more than eighteen months has elapsedsince he so ceased or the company so ceased (as the case may be).
4 The trust deed may provide for a person to be a beneficiary if the personis a charity and the circumstances are such that—
a there is no person who is a beneficiary within any rule which is includedin the deed and conforms with sub-paragraph (2) , (2A) or (3) above, and
b the trust is in consequence being wound up.
5 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above a qualifying period is aperiod—
a whose length is F174. . . not more than five years,
b whose length is specified in the trust deed, and
c which ends with the relevant time (within the meaning of thatsub-paragraph).
6 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (3) above a qualifying period is aperiod—
a whose length is equal to that of the period specified in the trust deedfor the purposes of a rule which conforms with sub-paragraph (2) above, and
b which ends when the person or company (as the case may be) ceased asmentioned in sub-paragraph (3)(b) above.
7 The trust deed must not provide for a person to be a beneficiary unlesshe falls within any rule which is included in the deed and conforms withsub-paragraph (2) , (2A), (3) or (4) above.
8 The trust deed must provide that, notwithstanding any other rule which isincluded in it, a person cannot be a beneficiary at a particular time (therelevant time) by virtue of a rule which conforms with sub-paragraph (2), (3) or (4) above if—
a at that time he has a material interest in the founding company, or
b at any time in the period of one year preceding the relevant time he hashad a material interest in that company.
9 For the purposes of this paragraph a company falls within the foundingcompany’s group at a particular time if—
a it is at that time resident in the United Kingdom, and
b it is the founding company or it is at that time controlled by thefounding company.
F39510 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Trustees’ functions

C285
1 The trust deed must contain provision as to the functions of the trustees.
2 The functions of the trustees must be so expressed that it is apparentthat their general functions are—
a to receive sums from the founding company and other sums (by way of loanor otherwise);
b to acquire securities;
c to transfer securities or sums (or both) to persons who are beneficiariesunder the terms of the trust deed;
cc to grant rights to acquire shares to persons who are beneficiaries under the terms of the trust deed;
d to transfer securities to the trustees of profit sharing schemes approvedunder Schedule 9 to the Taxes Act 1988, for a price not less than the pricethe securities might reasonably be expected to fetch on a sale in the openmarket;
e pending transfer, to retain the securities and to manage them (whether byexercising voting rights or otherwise).

Sums

C296
1 The trust deed must require that any sum received by the trustees—
a must be expended within the relevant period,
b may be expended only for one or more of the qualifying purposes, and
c must, while it is retained by them, be kept as cash or be kept in anaccount with a bank or building society.
2 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1) above the relevant period is theperiod of nine months beginning with the day found as follows—
a in a case where the sum is received from the founding company, or acompany which is controlled by that company at the time the sum is received,the day following the end of the period of account in which the sum is chargedas an expense of the company from which it is received;
b in any other case, the day the sum is received.
3 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1) above each of the following is aqualifying purpose—
a the acquisition of shares in the founding company;
b the repayment of sums borrowed;
c the payment of interest on sums borrowed;
d the payment of any sum to a person who is a beneficiary under the termsof the trust deed;
e the meeting of expenses.
4 The trust deed must provide that, in ascertaining for the purposes of arelevant rule whether a particular sum has been expended, sums receivedearlier by the trustees shall be treated as expended before sums received bythem later; and a relevant rule is one which is included in the trust deed andconforms with sub-paragraph (1) above.
5 The trust deed must provide that, where the trustees pay sums to differentbeneficiaries at the same time, all the sums must be paid on similar terms.
6 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (5) above, the fact that terms varyaccording to the levels of remuneration of beneficiaries, the length of theirservice, or similar factors, shall not be regarded as meaning that the termsare not similar.

Securities

C307
1 Subject to paragraph 8 below, the trust deed must provide that securitiesacquired by the trustees must be shares in the founding company which—
a form part of the ordinary share capital of the company,
b are fully paid up,
c are not redeemable, and
d are not subject to any restrictions other than restrictions which attachto all shares of the same class or a restriction authorised by sub-paragraph(2) below.
2 Subject to sub-paragraph (3) below, a restriction is authorised by thissub-paragraph if—
a it is imposed by the founding company’s articles of association,
b it requires all shares held by directors or employees of the foundingcompany, or of any other company which it controls for the time being, to bedisposed of on ceasing to be so held, and
c it requires all shares acquired, in pursuance of rights or interestsobtained by such directors or employees, by persons who are not (or haveceased to be) such directors or employees to be disposed of when they areacquired.
3 A restriction is not authorised by sub-paragraph (2) above unless—
a any disposal required by the restriction will be by way of sale for aconsideration in money on terms specified in the articles of association, and
b the articles also contain general provisions by virtue of which any persondisposing of shares of the same class (whether or not held or acquired asmentioned in sub-paragraph (2) above) may be required to sell them on termswhich are the same as those mentioned in paragraph (a) above.
4 The trust deed must provide that shares in the founding company may notbe acquired by the trustees at a price exceeding the price they mightreasonably be expected to fetch on a sale in the open market.
5 The trust deed must provide that shares in the founding company may notbe acquired by the trustees at a time when that company is controlled byanother company.
C318The trust deed may provide that the trustees may acquire securities otherthan shares in the founding company—
a if they are securities issued to the trustees in exchange in circumstancesmentioned in section [F178135(1) of the M85Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act1992], or
b if they are securities acquired by the trustees as a result of areorganisation, and the original shares the securities represent are sharesin the founding company (construing “reorganisation” and “originalshares” in accordance with section 126 of that Act).
C329
1 The trust deed must provide that—
a where the trustees transfer securities to a beneficiary, they must do soon qualifying terms;
b the trustees must transfer securities before the expiry of the qualifying period beginning with the date on which they acquired them.
2 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1) above a transfer of securities ismade on qualifying terms if—
a all the securities transferred at the same time other than those transferred on a transfer such as is mentioned in sub-paragraph (2ZA) below are transferred on similarterms,
b securities have been offered to all the persons who are beneficiariesunder the terms of the trust deed by virtue of a rule which conforms with paragraph 4(2), (3) or (4) above when the transfer is made, and
c securities are transferred to all such persons who have accepted.
2ZA For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1) above a transfer of securities is also made on qualifying terms if—
a it is made to a person exercising a right to acquire shares, and
b that right was obtained in accordance with the provisions of an SAYE option scheme
i which was established by, or by a company controlled by, the founding company, and
ii which is approved under Schedule 3 to the Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003, and
c that right is being exercised in accordance with the provisions of that scheme, and
d the consideration for the transfer is payable to the trustees.
2A For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1) above the qualifying period is—
a seven years, in the case of trusts established on or before the day on which the Finance Act 1994 was passed;
b twenty years, in the case of other trusts.
3 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above, the fact that terms varyaccording to the levels of remuneration of beneficiaries, the length of theirservice, or similar factors, shall not be regarded as meaning that the termsare not similar.
4 The trust deed must provide that, in ascertaining for the purposes of arelevant rule whether particular securities are transferred, securitiesacquired earlier by the trustees shall be treated as transferred by thembefore securities acquired by them later; and a relevant rule is one which isincluded in the trust deed and conforms with sub-paragraph (1) above.

Other features

C3310The trust deed must not contain features which are not essential orreasonably incidental to the purpose of acquiring sums and securities, granting rights to acquire shares to persons who are eligible to participate in SAYE option schemes approved under Schedule 3 to the Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003, transferring shares to such persons, transferring sums and securities to employees and directors, and transferringsecurities to the trustees of profit sharing schemes approved under Schedule 9 to the Taxes Act 1988.

Rules about acquisition etc.

C3411
1 The trust deed must provide that, for the purposes of the deed, thetrustees—
a acquire securities when they become entitled to them;
b transfer securities to another person when that other becomes entitled tothem;
c retain securities if they remain entitled to them.
2 But if the deed provides as mentioned in paragraph 8 above, it mustprovide for the following exceptions to any rule which is included in it andconforms with sub-paragraph (1)(a) above, namely, that—
a if securities are issued to the trustees in exchange in circumstancesmentioned in section [F186135(1) of the M86Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992], they shall be treated as having acquired them when they became entitledto the securities for which they are exchanged;
b if the trustees become entitled to securities as a result of areorganisation, they shall be treated as having acquired them when they becameentitled to the original shares which those securities represent (construing “reorganisation” and “original shares” in accordance with section [F186126] of that Act).
3 The trust deed must provide that—
a if the trustees agree to take a transfer of securities, for the purposesof the deed they become entitled to them when the agreement is made and noton a later transfer made pursuant to the agreement;
b if the trustees agree to transfer securities to another person, for thepurposes of the deed the other person becomes entitled to them when theagreement is made and not on a later transfer made pursuant to the agreement.

Position after trust’s establishment

C3512A trust which was at the time it was established a qualifying employeeshare ownership trust shall continue to be one, except that it shall not besuch a trust at any time when the requirements mentioned in paragraph 3(3)(a)to (f) above are not satisfied. This paragraph applies in relation to trusts established on or before the day on which the Finance Act 1994 was passed.
12A
1 Subject to sub-paragraphs (2) and (3) below, a trust which was at the time it was established a qualifying employee share ownership trust shall continue to be one.
2 If the trust deed makes provision under paragraph 3A(a) above, the trust shall not be a qualifying employee share ownership trust at any time when the requirements mentioned in paragraph 3(3)(a) to (f) above are not satisfied.
3 If the trust deed makes provision under paragraph 3A(b) above, the trust shall not be a qualifying employee share ownership trust at any time when the conditions mentioned in paragraph 3B(4)(a) to (e) above are not satisfied.
4 If the trust deed makes provision under paragraph 3A(c) above, the trust shall not be a qualifying employee share ownership trust at any time when—
a there is not a single trustee,
b the trustee is not a company which is resident in the United Kingdom and controlled by the founding company, or
c the conditions mentioned in paragraph 3C(4)(a) to (e) above are not satisfied as regards the directors of the trustee.
5 This paragraph applies in relation to trusts established after the day on which the Finance Act 1994 was passed.
C3613A trust is an employee share ownership trust at a particular time (therelevant time) if it was a qualifying employee share ownership trust at thetime it was established; and it is immaterial whether or not it is aqualifying employee share ownership trust at the relevant time.

Interpretation

C3714For the purposes of this Schedule the following are securities—
a shares;
b debentures.
C3815For the purposes of this Schedule, the question whether one company is controlled by another shall be construed in accordance with section 995 of the Income Tax Act 2007.
C3916
1 For the purposes of this Schedule a person shall be treated as having a material interest in a company if he, either on his own or with one or more of his associates, or if any associate of his with or without other such associates,—
a is the beneficial owner of, or able (directly or through the medium of other companies or by any other indirect means) to control, more than 5 percent. of the ordinary share capital of the company, or
b possesses, or is entitled to acquire, such rights as would, in the event of the winding-up of the company or in any other circumstances, give an entitlement to receive more than 5 per cent. of the assets which would then be available for distribution among the participators.
2 In this paragraph—
a associate” has the meaning given by section 448 of the Corporation Tax Act 2010, but subject to sub-paragraph (3) below,
b control” has the meaning given by section 995 of the Income Tax Act 2007, and
c participator” has the meaning given by section 454 of the Corporation Tax Act 2010.
3 Where a person has an interest in shares or obligations of the company asa beneficiary of an employee benefit trust, the trustees shall not be regarded as associates of his by reason only of that interest unless sub-paragraph (5)below applies in relation to him.
4 In sub-paragraph (3) above “employee benefit trust” has the same meaning as in paragraph 7 of Schedule 8 to the Taxes Act 1988, except that in its application for this purpose paragraph 7(5)(b) of that Schedule shall have effect as if it referred to the day on which this Act was passed instead of to 14th March 1989.
5 This sub-paragraph applies in relation to a person if at any time on or after the day on which this Act was passed—
a he, either on his own or with any one or more of his associates, or
b any associate of his, with or without other such associates,
has been the beneficial owner of, or able (directly or through the medium of other companies or by any other indirect means) to control, more than 5 percent. of the ordinary share capital of the company.
6 Sub-paragraphs (9) to (12) of paragraph 7 of Schedule 8 to the Taxes Act1988 shall apply for the purposes of sub-paragraph (5) above as they apply for the purposes of that paragraph.
17For the purposes of this Schedule a trust is established when the deed under which it is established is executed.
18For the purposes of this Schedule “SAYE option scheme” has the same meaning as in the SAYE code (see section 516 of the Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (approved SAYE option schemes)).

F298SCHEDULE 6 

Retirement Benefits Schemes

Section 75.

F298Part I  Amendments of Taxes Act

F298 Preliminary

F2981. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Amendments

F2982. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2983. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2984. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2985. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2986. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2987. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2988. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2989. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29810. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29811. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29812. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29813. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29814. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29815. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29816. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29817. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Effect of amendments

F29818. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298Part II  Approved Schemes: General

F298 Preliminary

F29819. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Remuneration

F29820. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29821. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29822. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Accelerated accrual

F29823. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29824. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Associated employments

F29825. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Connected schemes

F29826. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Augmentation

F29827. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Centralised schemes

F29828. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Election

F29829. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Supplementary

F29830. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298Part III  Approved Schemes: Additional Voluntary Contributions

F298 Preliminary

F29831. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Abatement of benefits

F29832. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Return of surplus funds

F29833. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29834. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F298 Supplementary

F29835. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F299SCHEDULE 7 

Personal Pension Schemes

Section 77.

F299Part I  Amendments of Taxes Act

F2991. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2992. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2993. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2994. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2995. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2996. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2997. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2998. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2999. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F299Part II  Schemes Approved Before Passing of This Act

F299 Interpretation

F29910. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F299 Lump sum to member

F29911. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F29912. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F417SCHEDULE 8 

Amendments of Chapter I of Part XII of Taxes Act 1988 (InsuranceCompanies)

Section 84.

F4171. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F4172. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F4173. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F4174. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F4175. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F4176. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F4177. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F311SCHEDULE 8A 

Modification of sections 82 TO 83A, 88 and 89 in relation to overseas life insurance companies

Section 89A.

F3111. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3111ZA. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3111ZB. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3111A. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3111AA. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3111B. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3111C. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3111D. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3112. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F344SCHEDULE 9 

Life Policies Etc. Held by Companies

Section 90.

F3441. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3442. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3443. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3444. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3445. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3446. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3447. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3448. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F190SCHEDULE 10 

1 

Schedule 4 to the Taxes Act 1988 (deep discount securities) shall beamended as mentioned in the following provisions of this Schedule.

2 

1 Paragraph 1 shall be amended as follows.
2 The following paragraph shall be inserted after sub-paragraph(1)(d)—
.
3 In sub-paragraph (1)(g) after the words “the company” there shall beinserted the words “or the public body”.
4 The following shall be inserted at the end of sub-paragraph (2)— “ This sub-paragraph applies only in the case of securities issued by acompany. ”
5 The following sub-paragraphs shall be inserted after sub-paragraph(3)—

3 

The following sub-paragraph shall be inserted after paragraph 4(7)—

4 

In paragraph 11(1) after the words “deep discount security” thereshall be inserted the words “issued by a company”.

5 

The following paragraph shall be inserted after paragraph 11—

6 

The following sub-paragraph shall be inserted after paragraph 13(2)—

7 

The following shall be inserted after paragraph 14—

F191SCHEDULE 11 

Deep gain securities

1 

C421 For the purposes of this Schedule a deep gain security is a redeemable security (whenever issued) which fulfils the first and second conditions.
2 The first condition is that, taking the security at the time it is issuedand assuming redemption, the amount payable on redemption might constitute adeep gain; and if the security is capable of redemption on one of a number ofoccasions, this condition is fulfilled if it is fulfilled as regards any oneof them.
3 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above “redemption” does not include any redemption which may be made before maturity only at the option of the person who issued the security(and no other person).
F2113A In the case of a security issued before 13th November 1991, for the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above “redemption” does not include any redemption which may be made before maturity otherwise than in pursuance of the exercise by the person who holds the security for the time being of an option exercisable only on the effluxion of time or the happening of an event which (judged at the time of the security’s issue) is certain or likely to occur.
3B In the case of a security issued on or after 13th November 1991, for the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above “redemption” does not include any redemption which may be made before maturity otherwise than at the option of the person who holds the security for the time being and as regards which the following conditions are fulfilled (judged at the time of the security’s issue)—
a the event occasioning redemption is such that, if it occurred and there was no provision for redemption, the interests of the person holding the security at the time of the occurrence might be adversely affected,
b the event occasioning redemption is neither certain nor likely to occur,
c the event occasioning redemption is not one of a number of events occasioning or allowing redemption before maturity at least one of which is certain or likely to occur, and
d the obtaining of a tax advantage by any person is not the main benefit, or one of the main benefits, that might be expected to accrue from the provision for redemption.
3C The condition set out in sub-paragraph (3B)(a) above is fulfilled if it is fulfilled by reference to any one potential holder, whether or not it is fulfilled by reference to other potential holders.(3D) In a case where—
a the security is one which under the terms of issue can be converted into or exchanged for a security of a different kind, and
b it falls to be decided whether the condition set out in paragraph (b) or (c) of sub-paragraph (3B) above is fulfilled,
the condition concerned shall not be treated as fulfilled unless it is fulfilled having regard only to circumstances in which (judged at the time of the security’s issue) the right to convert or exchange cannot be or is unlikely to be exercised.
3E In the case of a security issued on or after 13th November 1991, for the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above “redemption” does not include any redemption which may be made before maturity at the option of the person who holds the security for the time being and as regards which the following conditions are fulfilled (judged at the time of the security’s issue)—
a the event allowing the option to be exercised is such that, if it occurred and there was no provision for redemption, the interests of the person holding the security at the time of the occurrence might be adversely affected,
b the event allowing the option to be exercised is neither certain nor likely to occur,
c the event allowing the option to be exercised is not one of a number of events occasioning or allowing redemption before maturity at least one of which is certain or likely to occur, and
d the obtaining of a tax advantage by any person is not the main benefit, or one of the main benefits, that might be expected to accrue from the provision for redemption.
3F The condition set out in sub-paragraph (3E)(a) above is fulfilled if it is fulfilled by reference to any one potential holder, whether or not it is fulfilled by reference to other potential holders.(3G) In a case where—
a the security is one which under the terms of issue can be converted into or exchanged for a security of a different kind, and
b it falls to be decided whether the condition set out in paragraph (b) or (c) of sub-paragraph (3E) above is fulfilled,
the condition concerned shall not be treated as fulfilled unless it is fulfilled having regard only to circumstances in which (judged at the time of the security’s issue) the right to convert or exchange cannot be or is unlikely to be exercised.
4 The second condition is that the security—
a is not a deep discount security (either because the amount payable onredemption is not known at issue or for some other reason),
b is not a share in a company,
c is not a qualifying indexed security,
d is not a convertible security, and
e does not fall within sub-paragraph (5), (6) or (7) below.
5 A security falls within this sub-paragraph if it is a gilt-edged securityand—
a it was issued before 14th March 1989, or
b it was issued on or after that date but was issued under the sameprospectus as any gilt-edged security issued before that date.
6 A security falls within this sub-paragraph if it is a gilt-edged securityand—
a it was issued under a prospectus under which no securities were issuedbefore 14th March 1989,
b it was issued otherwise than on the occasion of the original issue underthe prospectus, and
c all the securities issued on the occasion of the original issue under theprospectus are gilt-edged securities which are not deep gain securities.
7 A security falls within this sub-paragraph if it is not a gilt-edgedsecurity and was issued (at whatever time) under the same prospectus as anyother security which was issued before the security in question and which isnot a deep gain security.
8 For the purposes of this paragraph—
a a deep discount security is a security which is a deep discount securityfor the purposes of Schedule 4 to the Taxes Act 1988,
b qualifying indexed security” has the meaning given byparagraph 2 below, and
c a gilt-edged security is a security which is a gilt-edged security for thepurposes of the M100Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 .
9 For the purposes of this paragraph the amount payable on redemption of asecurity constitutes a deep gain if the issue price is less than the amountso payable, and the amount by which it is less represents more than—
a 15 per cent. of the amount so payable, or
b half Y per cent. of the amount so payable, where Y is the number ofcomplete years between the date of issue and the redemption date.
10 For the purposes of this paragraph the amount payable on redemption doesnot include any amount payable by way of interest.

Qualifying indexed securities

2 

1 For the purposes of paragraph 1 above a qualifying indexed security is asecurity which fulfils each of the conditions set out below.
2 The first condition is that—
a the security is denominated in sterling and under the terms of issue theamount payable on redemption is determined by reference to the movement of theretail prices index,
b the security is denominated in a currency other than sterling and underthe terms of issue the amount payable on redemption is determined by referenceto any similar general index of prices which is published by the government,or by an agent of the government, of the territory in whose currency thesecurity is denominated, or
c the security was quoted in the official list of arecognised stock exchange at the time it was issued, and under the terms of issue the amount payable on redemption isdetermined by reference to the movement of a published index of prices ofshares quoted in the official list of a recognised stock exchange.
3 The second condition is that the terms of issue make no provision forconversion into, or redemption in, a currency other than that in which thesecurity is denominated on issue.
4 The third condition is that under the terms of issue—
a interest is payable on the security,
b not more than one year can elapse between the day of issue and the firstday on which interest becomes payable, or between any day on which interestbecomes payable and the next day on which it becomes payable,
c the interest payable is determined by reference to a rate which is notless than a reasonable commercial rate (judged by reference to the date ofissue and by reference to securities of a similar nature to the one inquestion), and
d the interest payable is also determined by reference to the movement ofthe index by reference to which the amount payable on redemption isdetermined.
5 The fourth condition is that where that index is applied to determine theamount payable on redemption or to determine interest it must, under the termsof issue, be applied precisely and without restriction.
6 The fifth condition is that—
a the security is expressed to be issued for a definite period stated on theface of the security, and
b the period so stated commences with the day of issue and is five years ormore.
7 The sixth condition is that the terms of issue contain no provisionenabling the person who holds the security for the time being to require anyof the following before the expiry of a period which commences with the dayof issue and which is five years or more—
a the security to be repurchased by the person who issued it;
b the security to be purchased by a person other than the person who issuedit;
c the security to be converted into another kind of security;
d the security to be redeemed in circumstances other than any of thequalifying circumstances (set out in sub-paragraph (13) below).
8 The seventh condition is that, where the issue is handled by an agent forthe person making the issue or by an underwriter, the terms on which the agentor underwriter offers the security—
a contain no provision for the security to be repurchased by the person whoissued it, converted into another kind of security, or redeemed, before theexpiry of a period which commences with the day of issue and which is fiveyears or more, and
b contain no provision enabling the person who holds the security for thetime being to require the security to be purchased, by a person other than theperson who issued it, before the expiry of a period which commences with theday of issue and which is five years or more.
8A If a security was issued before 9th June 1989, was not quoted in theofficial list of a recognised stock exchange at the time it was issued, butwas quoted in such a list on 8th June 1989, for the purposes of subparagraph(2)(c) above it shall be deemed to have been quoted in that list at the timeit was issued.
8B If a security was issued on or after 9th June 1989, and was quoted in theofficial list of a recognised stock exchange at a time aftet it was issued butbefore the end of the qualifying period, for the purposes of sub-paragraph(2)(c) above it shall be deemed to have been quoted in that list at the timeit was issued; and the qualifying period is the period of one month beginningwith the day on which the security was issued
9 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (5) above “redemption” does not include any redemption which may bemade before maturity only at the option of the person who issued the security(and no other person).
10 In a case where the amount payable on redemption, or the amount ofinterest, is under the terms of issue determined by reference to the movementof the index for a period (a notional period) in place of a later actualperiod (a process commonly known as lagging) the fourth condition shall betreated as fulfilled if the following rules are fulfilled—
a under the terms of issue the notional period must start not more thaneight months before the actual period starts and must end not more than eightmonths before the actual period ends, and
b where the index is applied for the notional period it must, under theterms of issue, be applied precisely and without restriction.
11 In a case where the terms of issue contain provision for the amountpayable on redemption to be not less than an amount stated in the terms, theprovision shall not prevent the fourth condition being fulfilled if—
a the security was issued before 9th June 1989, and
b the amount stated does not constitute a deep gain (within the meaninggiven by paragraph 1(9) above).
11A In a case where the terms of issue contain provision for the amountpayable on redemption to be not less than a specified percentage of the issueprice, the provision shall not prevent the fourth condition being fulfilledif the specified percentage is not greater than 10.
12 In a case where—
a the terms of issue contain provision for the amount payable on redemptionin any of the qualifying circumstances (set out in sub-paragraph (13) below)to be not less than an amount stated in the terms, and
b the security was issued before 9th June 1989,
the provision shall not prevent the fourth condition being fulfilled.
12A In a case where—
a the terms of issue contain provision for the amount payable on redemptionin any of the qualifying circumstances (set out in sub-paragraph (13) below)to be not more than the issue price, and
b the security was issued on or after 9th June 1989,
the provision shall not prevent the fourth condition being fulfilled.
13 For the purposes of sub-paragraphs (7) , (12) and (12A) above the following are qualifying circumstances—
a there is a fundamental change in the rules governing the index and thechange would be detrimental to the interests of the person who holds thesecurity for the time being;
b the index ceases to be published without being replaced by a comparableindex;
F217c in the case of a security issued before 13th November 1991, any circumstances except circumstances in which the person who holds the security for the time being exercises an option exercisable only on the effluxion of time or the happening of an event which (judged at the time of the security’s issue) is certain or likely to occur;
d in the case of a security issued on or after 13th November 1991, any circumstances for redemption which may be made before maturity otherwise than at the option of the person who holds the security for the time being and as regards which the conditions set out in paragraph 1(3B) above are fulfilled (judged at the time of the security’s issue and read subject to paragraph 1(3C) and (3D) above);
e in the case of a security issued on or after 13th November 1991, any circumstances for redemption which may be made before maturity at the option of the person who holds the security for the time being and as regards which the conditions set out in paragraph 1(3E) above are fulfilled (judged at the time of the security’s issue and read subject to paragraph 1(3F) and (3G) above).
14 In a case where an issue is handled by an agent for the person making theissue, or by an underwriter, for the purposes of sub-paragraphs (2) to (5) and(10) above the terms of issue shall be taken to include any terms on which theagent or underwriter offers the security.
15 For the purposes of this paragraph the amount payable on redemption doesnot include any amount payable by way of interest.
16 For the purposes of this paragraph “control” (in relation to acompany) shall be construed in accordance with section 840 of the Taxes Act1988.

Convertible securities

3 

1 For the purposes of paragraph 1 above a security is a convertible securityif—
a it was issued by a company before 9th June 1989,
b under the terms of issue it can be converted into or exchanged for sharecapital in a company (whether or not the company is the one which issued thesecurity), and
c the condition set out in sub-paragraph (2) below is fulfilled.
2 The condition is that—
a at some time in the qualifying period the security was quoted in theofficial list of a recognised stock exchange,
b at some time in that period relevant share capital was so quoted, or
c each of paragraphs (a) and (b) above is satisfied (though not necessarilyas regards the same time).
3 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above the qualifying period is theperiod of one month beginning with the day on which the security was issued.
4 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above relevant share capital isshare capital in the company into whose share capital the security can beconverted or for whose share capital the security can be exchanged; andrelevant share capital need not be share capital into or for which thesecurity can be converted or exchanged.
5 References in this paragraph to share capital are to share capital bywhatever name called.

Issue price

3A 

1 This paragraph applies where—
a securities (old securities) of a particular kind are issued by way of the original issue of securities of that kind,
b on a later occasion securities (new securities) of the same kind are issued,
c a sum (the extra return) is payable in respect of each new security, by the person issuing it, to reflect the fact that interest is accruing on the old securities,
d the issue price of each new security includes an element (whether or not separately identified) representing payment for the extra return, and
e the extra return is equal to the amount of interest payable for the relevant period on each old security.
2 In such a case, the issue price of each new security shall be deemed for the purposes of paragraph 1(9) above to be its actual issue price less an amount equal to the extra return payable in respect of the security.
3 For the purposes of this paragraph securities are of the same kind if they are treated as being of the same kind by the practice of a recognised stock exchange or would be so treated if dealt with on such a stock exchange.
4 For the purposes of this paragraph the relevant period is the period beginning with the day following the relevant day and ending with the day on which the new securities are issued.
5 For the purposes of this paragraph the relevant day is—
a the last (or only) interest payment day to fall in respect of the old securities before the day on which the new securities are issued, or
b the day on which the old securities were issued, in a case where no interest payment day fell in respect of them before the day on which the new securities are issued;
and an interest payment day, in relation to the old securities, is a day on which interest is payable under them.

Meaning of transfer etc.

4 

1 This paragraph has effect for the purposes of this Schedule.
2 Transfer”, in relation to a security, means transfer by wayof sale, exchange, gift or otherwise.
2A But (notwithstanding sub-paragraph (2) above) “transfer”does not include a transfer made ona conversion of a security into sharecapital in a company.
3 Where an agreement for the transfer of a security is made, it istransferred, and the person to whom it is agreed to be transferred becomesentitled to it, when the agreement is made and not on a later transfer madepursuant to the agreement; and “entitled”, “transfer” and cognateexpressions shall be construed accordingly.
4 A person holds a security at a particular time if he is entitled to it atthe time.
5 A person acquires a security when he becomes entitled to it; and “acquisition” shall be construed accordingly.
6 If an agreement is conditional (whether on the exercise of an option orotherwise) for the purposes of sub-paragraph (3) above it is made when thecondition is exercised.

Charge to tax on transfer

5 

1 This paragraph applies if—
a there is a transfer of a deep gain security on or after 14th March 1989(irrespective of when the person making the transfer acquired it), and
b the amount obtained on transfer exceeds the amount paid on acquisition.
2 In such a case—
a an amount equal to the difference between those two amounts, less theamount of any costs, shall be treated as income of the person making thetransfer,
b the income shall be chargeable to tax under Case III or Case IV (as thecase may be) of Schedule D,
c the income shall be treated as arising in the year of assessment in whichthe transfer takes place, and
d notwithstanding anything in sections 64 to 67 of the Taxes Act 1988, thetax shall be computed on the income arising in the year of assessment forwhich the computation is made.
3 For the purposes of this paragraph—
a the amount obtained on transfer is the amount obtained, in respect of thetransfer, by the person making it,
b the amount paid on acquisition is the amount paid by that person inrespect of his acquisition of the security (or his last acquisition of itbefore the transfer), and
c costs are the costs incurred by that person in connection with thetransfer and with his acquisition of the security (or his last acquisition ofit before the transfer).
4 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (3)(a) above the person making thetransfer shall be treated as obtaining in respect of it—
a any amount he actually obtains in respect of it, and
b any amount he is entitled to obtain, but does not obtain, in respect ofit.
5 Sub-paragraph (4) above shall not apply where paragraph 7, 8 or 9 belowapplies.

Exchange gains and losses

F2315A 

1 This paragraph applies where—
a there is a transfer or redemption of a deep gain security, and
b the person making the transfer or (as the case may be) the person who was entitled to the security immediately before redemption is a qualifying company.
2 For the purposes of paragraph 5 above the amount treated as income—
a shall be increased by the amount of any non-trading exchange loss, or the aggregate of the amounts of any non-trading exchange losses, accruing to the company as regards the underlying right for any accrual period or periods constituting or falling within the holding period;
b shall (after taking account of paragraph (a) above) be reduced by the amount of any non-trading exchange gain, or the aggregate of the amounts of any non-trading exchange gains, accruing to the company as regards the underlying right for any accrual period or periods constituting or falling within the holding period.
3 For the purposes of this paragraph—
a the underlying right is the right to settlement under the debt on the security;
b accrual period” and “qualifying company” have the same meanings as in Chapter II of Part II of the Finance Act 1993;
c the question whether a non-trading exchange gain or loss accrues to the company as regards the underlying right for an accrual period shall be decided in accordance with that Chapter.
4 For the purposes of this paragraph the holding period is the period which—
a begins when the company acquired (or last acquired) the security before the transfer or redemption, and
b ends when the transfer or redemption is made.

Redemption

6 

1 Paragraph 5 above applies where there is a redemption of a deep gainsecurity as well as where there is a transfer.
2 In its application by virtue of sub-paragraph (1) above, paragraph 5 aboveshall have effect as if—
a references to the person making the transfer were to the person who wasentitled to the security immediately before redemption, and
b other references to transfer were to redemption.

Death

7 

C431 Where an individual who is entitled to a security dies, for the purposesof this Schedule—
a he shall be treated as transferring it to his personal representativesimmediately before his death, and
b he shall be treated as obtaining in respect of the transfer an amountequal to the market value of the security at the time of the transfer.
2 Where a security is transferred by personal representatives to a legatee,for the purposes of paragraph 5 above they shall be treated as obtaining inrespect of the transfer an amount equal to the market value of the securityat the time of the transfer.
3 In sub-paragraph (2) above “legatee” includes any person taking (whether beneficiallyor as trustee) under a testamentary disposition or on an intestacy or partialintestacy, including any person taking by virtue of an appropriation by thepersonal representatives in or towards satisfaction of a legacy or otherinterest or share in the deceased’s property.

Connected persons

8 

1 This paragraph applies where a security is transferred from one person toanother (whether or not on or after 14th March 1989) and they are connectedwith each other.
2 For the purposes of paragraph 5 above—
a the person making the transfer shall be treated as obtaining in respectof it an amount equal to the market value of the security at the time of thetransfer, and
b the person to whom the transfer is made shall be treated as paying inrespect of his acquisition of the security an amount equal to that marketvalue.
3 Section 839 of the Taxes Act 1988 (connected persons) shall apply for thepurposes of this paragraph.

Market value

9 

1 This paragraph applies where a security is transferred from one person toanother (whether or not on or after 14th March 1989) and—
a the transfer is made for a consideration which consists of or includesconsideration not in money or money’s worth, or
b the transfer is made otherwise than by way of a bargain made at arm’slength.
2 For the purposes of paragraph 5 above—
a the person making the transfer shall be treated as obtaining in respectof it an amount equal to the market value of the security at the time of thetransfer, and
b the person to whom the transfer is made shall be treated as paying inrespect of his acquisition of the security an amount equal to that marketvalue.

Underwriters

F21910 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Trustees

11 

1 Where on a transfer or redemption of a security by trustees an amount istreated as income chargeable to tax by virtue of paragraph 5 above, the rateat which it is chargeable shall be the rate applicable to trusts for the year of assessment in which the transfer ismade.
2 Where the trustees are trustees of a scheme to which section 469 of theTaxes Act 1988 applies, sub-paragraph (1) above shall not apply if or to theextent that the amount is treated as income in the accounts of the scheme.

Foreign currency

12 

1 Where, for the purposes of paragraph 5 above and apart from thisparagraph, the amount obtained on transfer would be an amount expressed in acurrency other than sterling, it shall be treated for those purposes as thesterling equivalent on the day of the transfer of the amount so expressed.
2 Where, for the purposes of paragraph 5 above and apart from thisparagraph, the amount paid on acquisition would be an amount expressed in acurrency other than sterling, it shall be treated for those purposes as thesterling equivalent on the day of the acquisition of the amount so expressed.
3 Where, for the purposes of paragraph 5 above and apart from thisparagraph, the amount of the costs incurred by a person in connection with atransfer would be an amount expressed in a currency other than sterling, itshall be treated for those purposes as the sterling equivalent on the day ofthe transfer of the amount so expressed.
4 Where, for the purposes of paragraph 5 above and apart from thisparagraph, the amount of the costs incurred by a person in connection with anacquisition would be an amount expressed in a currency other than sterling,it shall be treated for those purposes as the sterling equivalent on the dayof the acquisition of the amount so expressed.
5 In sub-paragraphs (1) and (3) above “transfer” includes “redemption”.
6 For the purposes of this paragraph the sterling equivalent of an amounton a particular day is the sterling equivalent calculated by reference to theLondon closing rate of exchange for that day.

Receipts in United Kingdom

13 

1 Sub-paragraph (2) below applies where—
a by virtue of paragraph 5(2) above an amount is treated as income of aperson and as chargeable to tax under Case IV of Schedule D, and
b the person satisfies the Board, on a claim in that behalf, that he is notdomiciled in the United Kingdom, or that (being a Commonwealth citizen or acitizen of the Republic of Ireland) he is not ordinarily resident in theUnited Kingdom.
2 In such a case—
a any amounts received in the United Kingdom in respect of the amounttreated as income shall be treated as income arising in the year of assessmentin which they are so received, and
b paragraph 5(2) above shall have effect with the substitution of paragraph(a) above for paragraph 5(2)(c).
3 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above—
a there shall be treated as received in the United Kingdom all amounts paid,used or enjoyed in, or in any manner or form transmitted or brought to, theUnited Kingdom, and
b subsections (6) to (9) of section 65 of the Taxes Act 1988 shall apply asthey apply for the purposes of subsection (5) of that section.

Retirement benefit schemes

14 

In a case where—
a paragraph 5 above would apply (apart from this paragraph) to a transferor redemption of a security, and
b immediately before the transfer or redemption was made the security washeld for the purposes of an exempt approved scheme (within the meaning ofChapter I of Part XIV of the Taxes Act 1988),
that paragraph shall not apply to the transfer or redemption.

Charities

15 

1 In a case where—
a paragraph 5 above would apply (apart from this paragraph) to a transferor redemption of a security,
b immediately before the transfer or redemption was made the security washeld by a charity, and
c the amount which would (apart from this paragraph) be treated as incomeby virtue of paragraph 5 above is applicable and applied for charitablepurposes,
that paragraph shall not apply to the transfer or redemption.
2 In this paragraph “charity” has the same meaning as in section 506 of the TaxesAct 1988.

Stock lending

16 

In a case where—
a a security is the subject of a transfer which falls within section 129(3)of the Taxes Act 1988, and
b paragraph 5 above would apply to the transfer (apart from this paragraph),
that paragraph shall not apply to the transfer.

Accrued income scheme

17 

In a case where—
a a security is the subject of a transfer to which paragraph 5 aboveapplies, and
b apart from this paragraph, the transfer would be a transfer for thepurposes of sections 710 to 728 of the Taxes Act 1988,
the transfer shall not be a transfer for those purposes.

Other provisions excluded

18 

In a case where paragraph 5 above applies to the redemption of a security,sections 123 and 348 to 350 of the Taxes Act 1988 shall not apply to anyproceeds of the redemption.

Identification of securities

19 

Section 108 of the M101Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 shall apply to theidentification, for the purposes of this Schedule, of deep gain securitiestransferred or redeemed as it applies to the identification, for the purposesof capital gains tax, of deep discount securities disposed of.

F222Early redemption: special rules

F22319A 

1 Sub-paragraph (2) below applies where—
a a security is issued on or after 13th November 1991,
b it would be a deep gain security apart from paragraph 1(3B) or (3E) above,
c it is redeemed before maturity, and
d immediately before redemption it was held by a person connected with the person who issued it.
2 As regards the redemption, paragraphs 5 to 19 above shall have effect as if—
a the security were a deep gain security, and
b it had been acquired as such (whatever the time it was acquired).
3 Sub-paragraph (4) below applies where—
a the conditions set out in sub-paragraph (1)(a) to (c) above are fulfilled,
b the security was transferred in the period ending with redemption and beginning with the day falling one year before the day of redemption, and
c the transfer was by a person connected with the person who issued the security.
4 As regards the transfer, paragraphs 5 to 19 above shall have effect as if—
a the security were a deep gain security, and
b it had been acquired as such (whatever the time it was acquired).
5 Section 839 of the Taxes Act 1988 (connected persons) shall apply for the purposes of this paragraph.

Gilts: special rules

20 

1 In a case where—
a securities have been issued under a prospectus under which no securitieswere issued before 14th March 1989,
b some of the securities issued under the prospectus are gilt-edgedsecurities which are would-be deep gain securities,
c some of the securities issued under the prospectus are gilt-edgedsecurities which are not would-be deep gain securities, and
d there is a time when the aggregate nominal value of the securities fallingwithin paragraph (b) above (at that time) exceeds the aggregate nominal valueof the securities falling within paragraph (c) above (at that time),
sub-paragraph (2) below shall apply in relation to any gilt-edgedsecurity which has been or is issued under the prospectus at any time (whetherbefore, at or after the time mentioned in paragraph (d) above).
2 As regards any event occurring in relation to the security after the timementioned in sub-paragraph (1)(d) above, paragraphs 5 to 19 above shall haveeffect as if—
a the security were a deep gain security, and
b it had been acquired as such (whatever the time it was acquired).
3 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1) above a would-be deep gain securityis a security which would be a deep gain security apart from paragraph 1(6)above.
4 In sub-paragraph (1) above “gilt-edged security” has the same meaning as in paragraph1 above.
5 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above events, in relation to asecurity, include anything constituting a transfer or acquisition for thepurposes of this Schedule.

Non-gilts: special rules

21 

1 In a case where—
a all the securities issued on the occasion of the original issue under aparticular prospectus (whatever the time of the issue) are neither gilt-edgedsecurities nor deep gain securities,
b some of the securities issued under the prospectus are not gilt-edgedsecurities but are new would-be deep gain securities, and
c there is a time when the aggregate nominal value of the securities fallingwithin paragraph (b) above (at that time) exceeds the aggregate nominal valueof the securities which (looking at the state of affairs at that time) havebeen issued under the prospectus and are neither gilt-edged securities nor newwould-be deep gain securities,
sub-paragraph (2) below shall apply in relation to any security which isnot a gilt-edged security but which has been or is issued under the prospectusat any time (whether before, at or after the time mentioned in paragraph (c)above).
2 As regards any event occurring in relation to the security after the timementioned in sub-paragraph (1)(c) above, paragraphs 5 to 19 above shall haveeffect as if—
a the security were a deep gain security, and
b it had been acquired as such (whatever the time it was acquired).
3 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1) above , and subject to paragraph 21A below, a new would-be deep gain security is a security which—
a would be a deep gain security apart from paragraph 1(7) above, and
b was issued on or after 14th March 1989.
4 In sub-paragraph (1) above “gilt-edged security” has the same meaning as in paragraph1 above.
5 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above events, in relation to asecurity, include anything constituting a transfer or acquisition for thepurposes of this Schedule.

F22521A 

1 A security which (apart from this paragraph) would be a new would-be deep gain security for the purposes of paragraph 21(1) above is not such a security if the following three conditions are fulfilled.
2 The first condition is that all the securities issued on the occasion of the original issue were issued before 13th November 1991.
3 The second condition is that the security is issued on or after 13th November 1991.
4 The third condition is that, even if paragraph 1(7) above did not prevent the security being a deep gain security, it would nevertheless not be a deep gain security if for the purposes of paragraph 1(2) above “redemption” did not include any redemption which may be made before maturity otherwise than in pursuance of the exercise by the person who holds the security for the time being of an option exercisable only on the effluxion of time or the happening of an event which (judged at the time of the security’s issue) is certain or likely to occur.

Indexed securities: special rules

22 

1 Sub-paragraph (2) below applies where—
a a qualifying indexed security has been issued,
b the person by whom it was issued and the person for the time being holdingit make an agreement, on or after 14th March 1989, varying the terms underwhich it is held, and
c the terms as varied are such that, had the security been issued on thoseterms, it would be a deep gain security.
2 As regards any event occurring in relation to the security after theagreement is made, paragraphs 5 to 19 above shall have effect as if—
a the security were a deep gain security, and
b it had been acquired as such (whatever the time it was acquired).
3 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above events, in relation to asecurity, include anything constituting a transfer or acquisition for thepurposes of this Schedule.
4 In this paragraph “qualifying indexed security” has the meaning given byparagraph 2 above.

Convertible securities: special rules (1)

22A 

1 Sub-paragraph (2) below applies where—
a a security is a qualifying convertible security, for the purposes ofSchedule 10 to the Finance Act 1990, at the time of its issue,
b apart from paragraph 21 of Schedule 4 to the Taxes Act 1988, it would bea deep discount security at that time, and
c at a later time it ceases to be a qualifying convertible security for thepurposes of Schedule 10 to the Finance Act 1990.
2 As regards any event occurring in relation to the security after the timementioned in sub-paragraph (1)(c) above, paragraphs 5 to 19 above shall haveeffect as if—
a the security were a deep gain security, and
b it had been acquired as such (whatever the time it was acquired).
3 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above events, in relation to asecurity, include anything constituting a transfer or acquisition for thepurposes of this Schedule.

Convertible securities: special rules (2)

22B 

1 In a case where—
a a security is a qualifying convertible security, for the purposes ofSchedule 10 to the Finance Act 1990, at the time of its issue, and
b apart from this sub-paragraph it would be a deep gain security at thattime,
then (subject to sub-paragraph(3) below) the security shall be treated,at the time of its issue and at all subsequent times, as not being a deep gainsecurity.
2 Sub-paragraph (3) below applies where—
a sub-paragraph (1) above applies in the case of a security, and
b at a time after its issue it ceases to be a qualifying convertiblesecurity for the purposes of Schedule 10 to the Finance Act 1990.
3 As regards any event occurring in relation to the security after the timementioned in sub-paragraph (2)(b) above, paragraphs 5 to 19 above shall haveeffect as if—
a the security were a deep gain security, and
b it had been acquired as such (whatever the time it was acquired).
4 For the purposes of sub-paragraph (3)above events, in relation to asecurity, include anything constituting a transfer or acquisition for thepurposes of this Schedule.

F227No particular redemption date: special rule

F22822C 

1 This paragraph applies to a security whose terms contain no particular date by which it is to be redeemed.
2 In the case of such a security the following expressions, wherever they appear in this Schedule, shall be construed as if the words “before maturity” were omitted—
a the expression “redemption which may be made before maturity”;
b the expression “redemption before maturity”;
c the expression “redeemed before maturity”.

Power to modify

23 

1 The Treasury may make regulations amending paragraph 2 above so as to doone or more of the following—
a vary any condition for the time being set out in that paragraph;
b omit any condition for the time being so set out;
c add a new condition to any for the time being so set out;
d substitute a condition or conditions for any condition or conditions forthe time being so set out.
2 Regulations under sub-paragraph (1) above—
a shall be made by statutory instrument subject to annulment in pursuanceof a resolution of the House of Commons,
b shall apply where there is a transfer within the meaning of this Schedule,or a redemption, on or after such day as may be specified in the regulations,and
c may include such supplementary, incidental, consequential or transitionalprovisions as appear to the Treasury to be necessary or expedient.

SCHEDULE 12 

Close Companies

Section 107.

Part I  Administrative Provisions

Interpretation

F3911. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Provision of information by company

F3732. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Provision of information by shareholders

F392F4003. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Information about bearer securities

F3924. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Part II  Amendments Connected with Repeal of Chapter III of Part XI of Taxes Act1988

The Taxes Management Act 1970 (c.9)

F3745. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

The Capital Gains Tax Act 1979 (c.14)

F1926. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

The Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988 (c.1)

7In section 13 of the Taxes Act 1988 (small companies’ rate) in subsection(9) for the words “paragraph 17 of Schedule 19” there shall besubstituted the words “paragraphs 2 to 4 of Schedule 12 to the Finance Act1989”.
F2608. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
9
1 In section 187(3) of the Taxes Act 1988 (cases in which a person has amaterial interest in a company for the purposes of sections 185 to 187 of, andSchedules 9 and 10 to, that Act) for the words from “in a company” to theend of paragraph (b) there shall be substituted—
and at the end there shall be added the words “ and “participator” has the meaning given by section 417(1) ”.
2 This paragraph shall have effect in relation to accounting periods beginning after 31st March 1989.
10
1 In section 214 of the Taxes Act 1988 (chargeable payments connected with exempt distributions) in subsection (1)(c) for the words from “338(2)(a)”to “Schedule 19” there shall be substituted the words “and338(2)(a)”.
2 This paragraph shall have effect in relation to accounting periods beginning after 31st March 1989, except in any case where section 427(4) ofthe Taxes Act 1988 has effect by virtue of section 103(2) of this Act.
F39311. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F39312. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
13
F3251 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3252 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F3253 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4 This paragraph shall have effect in relation to accounting periods beginning after 31st March 1989.
14
1 In section 576 of the Taxes Act 1988 (which relates to relief for losses on certain unquoted shares) in subsection (5), for paragraph (a) of the definition of “trading company” there shall be substituted—
.
2 This paragraph shall have effect in relation to disposals made after 31stMarch 1989.
F30615. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F30716. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F32617. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
18
1 Paragraph 7 of Schedule 8 to the Taxes Act 1988 (cases in which a person has a material interest in a company for the purposes of a profit-related pay scheme) shall be amended in accordance with this paragraph.
2 In sub-paragraph (2) for the words from “in a company” onwards there shall be substituted—
.
3 In sub-paragraph (3) the second “and” shall be omitted and after the definition of “control” there shall be inserted
.
4 This paragraph shall have effect in relation to accounting periods beginning after 31st March 1989.

SCHEDULE 13 

Capital Allowances: Miscellaneous Amendments

Section 121.

1–26. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F193

Patent rights

F19427. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
28–30. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F195

F202SCHEDULE 14 

Gifts of business assets

F1961. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F1972. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F1983. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Gifts on which inheritance tax is chargeable etc.

F1994. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Payment of tax by instalments

F2005. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Minor and consequential amendments

F2016. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F208SCHEDULE 15 

Postponed charges etc.: pre-1st April 1982 events

F2031. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F2042. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Reduction of 1982 value in certain cases

F2053. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

No gain/no loss disposals

F2064. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Elections

F2075. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

SCHEDULE 16 

Broadcasting: Additional Payments by Programme Contractors

Section 181.

Part I  Amendments of the Principal Sections

1
1 Section 32 of the M87Broadcasting Act 1981 (rentalpayments by programme contractors) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (1)(b), after the word “amounts” there shall beinserted the words “in respect of profits and in respect of advertisingrevenue”.
3 In subsection (2)(b), after the word “amounts” there shall beinserted the words “in respect of profits”.
4 In subsection (4), for the word “Table”, where it first occurs, thereshall be substituted the word “Tables” and the following Tables shall besubstituted for the Table in that subsection—
5 Subsection (4A) shall be omitted.
6 In subsection (5), for the words “relevant sum mentioned in subsection(4A)” there shall be substituted the words “relevant sum mentioned in theTables above”.
7 In subsection (7), after the words “additional payments” there shallbe inserted the words “in respect of profits”.
8 In subsection (8), for the words “any of the provisions of subsections(4), (4A)” there shall be substituted the words “any of the provisionsof subsections (4)”.
9 For subsection (9) there shall be substituted the followingsubsections—
2
1 Section 33 of the M88Broadcasting Act 1981 (supplementalprovisions) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (1), for the words “advertising receipts” there shallbe substituted the words “advertising revenue”.
3 In subsection (2), for the words “advertising receipts” there shallbe substituted the words “advertising revenue” and for the words “thosereceipts derive” there shall be substituted the words “the revenuederives”.
4 In subsection (3)(c), for the words “advertising receipts” thereshall be substituted the words “advertising revenue” and for the word “derive” there shall be substituted the word “derives”.
3
1 Section 34 of the Broadcasting Act 1981 (instalments payable on accountby programme contractors for their accounting periods) shall be amended asfollows.
2 In subsection (3)(c), for the words “receipts are” there shall besubstituted the words “revenue is”.
4
1 Section 35 of the M89Broadcasting Act 1981 (provision forsupplementing additional payments) shall be amended as follows.
2 In subsection (1)—
a in paragraph (a), after the words “additional payments” there shallbe inserted the words “in respect of profits”;
b in paragraph (b)(ii), the words “in the case of second categoryprofits,” shall be omitted; and
c at the end, there shall be added the words “in respect of profits of hisfor that period”.

Part II  Provisions Inserted as Schedule 4 to the Broadcasting Act 1981

Part III  Transitional Provisions

1
1 In this paragraph—
  • new statutory provisions” means the provisions of the M90Broadcasting Act 1981 as amended by this Act; and
  • existing statutory provisions” means the provisions of thatAct as they had effect immediately before the coming into force of section181.
2 Any contract between the Authority and a programme contractor which is inforce immediately before the day on which section 181 of this Act comes intoforce shall, until it is varied or superseded by a further contract betweenthem or expires or is otherwise terminated (whichever first occurs), be deemedto be modified by virtue of this Schedule so as—
a to substitute provisions in conformity with the new statutory provisionsfor so much of the contract as is in accordance with the existing statutoryprovisions and is not in conformity with the new statutory provisions, and
b to incorporate in the contract such additional provisions as a contractbetween the Authority and a programme contractor is required to include inaccordance with the new statutory provisions;
and (subject to paragraph 5 of Schedule 4 to the 1981 Act) any provisionsof the contract which provide for arbitration as to any matters contained inthe contract in accordance with the existing statutory provisions shall beconstrued as making the like provision for arbitration in relation to mattersdeemed to be included in the contract by virtue of this sub-paragraph.
3 Where it appears to the Authority that the new statutory provisions callfor the inclusion of additional terms in any such contract, but do not affordsufficient particulars of what those terms should be, the Authority may, afterconsulting the programme contractor, decide what those terms are to be.
4 This paragraph shall not be taken to have effect in relation to anycontract entered into by a programme contractor and any person other than theAuthority before the day on which section 181 of this Act comes into force.
2Where any accounting period of a programme contractor begins before 1stJanuary 1990 and ends after 31st December 1989, the additional paymentspayable by the programme contractor in relation to that accounting periodunder section 32 of the M91Broadcasting Act 1981 shall be theaggregate of—
a the amounts payable by him on the assumption that section 181 of this Actwas not in force at any time during the accounting period, multipliedby—
XX+Y,
and
b the amounts payable by him on the assumption that that section was inforce throughout the accounting period, multiplied by—
YX+Y;
where (taking any odd four days or more as a week)—
  • X is the number of weeks in the accounting period falling before 1stJanuary 1990, and
  • Y is the number of weeks in the accounting period falling after 31stDecember 1989.
3Where, under the existing statutory provisions, any excess of firstcategory expenditure over first category income of a programme contractorwould have been carried forward and treated as relevant first categoryexpenditure of his for an accounting period ending after 31st December 1989if those provisions had applied in relation to that period then the excessshall be carried forward and treated, under the new statutory provisions, asrelevant expenditure of the contractor for any accounting period which endsafter that date.
4In this Part of this Schedule, references to programme contractors shallbe read as including references to teletext contractors.

SCHEDULE 17 

Repeals

Section 187.

Part I  Customs and Excise

1979 c. 2.The Customs and Excise Management Act 1979.Section 17(5)(a).Section 147(1).
1979 c. 4.The Alcoholic Liquor Duties Act 1979.Section 73.
1988 c. 39.The Finance Act 1988.Section 11(2).

The repeals of section 147(1) of the Customs and Excise Management Act1979 and section 11(2) of the Finance Act 1988 have effect in relation tooffences committed on or after the day on which this Act is passed.

F210Part II 

Part III  Value Added Tax

1983 c. 55.The Value Added Tax Act 1983.In Schedule 5, Group 6 and, in Group 8A, Note (5).
1984 c. 43.The Finance Act 1984.In Schedule 6, Part II.
S.I. 1986/704.The Value Added Tax (Land) Order 1986.The whole Order.
S.I. 1986/716.The Value Added Tax (Land) (No.2) Order 1986.The whole Order.
S.I. 1987 /1072.The Value Added Tax (Construction of Buildings) (No.2) Order 1987.Article 2.
1The repeal of Group 6 of Schedule 5 to the Value Added Tax Act 1983 haseffect in relation to supplies made on or after 1st April 1989.
2The remaining repeals have effect in accordance with Schedule 3 to thisAct.

Part IV  Income and Corporation Tax: General

1970 c. 9.The Taxes Management Act 1970.In section 15(11), paragraph (b) and the word “and” preceding it.
1988 c. 1.The Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988.In section 131(2), the words “for the same or another chargeableperiod”.In section 149(1), the words “for that period” and the words “for that or any other period”. Section 170.Section 175(3).In section 176(1), the words “(but not morethan six months)”.In section 178(2), paragraph (b) and the word “or”preceding it.Section 203(4).In section 231, in subsection (4) the words “andwhere” onwards, and subsection (5).Section 433.Section 434(4) and(5).Section 435.Section 436(3)(b).Section 507(2).In section 590(3)(d), thewords “(disregarding any excess of that remuneration over the permittedmaximum)”.Section 595(2) and (3).In section 596(3)(a), the word “either” and the words “or subsection (2)”.In section 600(1), thewords “or have been” and the words “or has at any time been”.Section635(4).In section 645, in subsection (3), the word “and” followingparagraph (a) and subsection (5).In section 655(5), the words “in caseswhere the applications are made before 1st February 1990”.Section 769(7)(b)and (c).In section 824(10), the definition of “United Kingdom estate”.InSchedule 8, in paragraph 7(1), the words “, or is an associate of a personwho has,”; in paragraph 13, in sub-paragraph (1) the word “fixed” andsub-paragraphs (2) and (3); and, in paragraph 14, sub-paragraph (2), insub-paragraph (5) the words “specified in, or” and sub-paragraph (7).InSchedule 9, in paragraph 10, paragraph (ii) of sub-paragraph (c) and the word “and” preceding it.In Schedule 23, paragraph 8.
1988 c. 39.The Finance Act 1988.In section 68(1), the words from “at the fixed price” to “tendered”.
1The repeals in sections 131 and 149 and of section 170 of the Income andCorporation Taxes Act 1988 have effect in accordance with section 42 of thisAct.
2The repeals in sections 231 and 824 of the Income and Corporation TaxesAct 1988 have effect in accordance with sections 110 and 111 of this Act.
3The repeals in sections 433 to 435 of the Income and Corporation Taxes Act1988 have effect in accordance with section 84(5) of this Act and the repealof section 436(3)(b) of that Act has effect in accordance with section 87(5)of this Act.
4The repeals in sections 590, 595, 596 and 600 of, and in Schedule 23 to,the Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988 have effect in accordance withSchedule 6 to this Act.
5The repeals in sections 635, 645 and 655 of the Income and CorporationTaxes Act 1988 have effect in accordance with Schedule 7 to this Act.
6The repeal of section 769(7)(b) and (c) of the Income and CorporationTaxes Act 1988 has effect in accordance with section 100 of this Act.
7The repeal in the Finance Act 1988 has effect in relation to offers madeon or after 11th October 1988.

C41Part V  Close Companies

1970 c. 9.The Taxes Management Act 1970.Section 29(2).In section 31(3)(b), the words “426,”.In the Table insection 98, in the first column, the reference to paragraph 17 of Schedule 19to the principal Act.In Schedule 3, in rule 8, the words from “orrelating” to “Schedule 19 to the principal Act”.
1972 c. 41.The Finance Act 1972.In Schedule 24, paragraph 6.
1979 c. 14.The Capital Gains Tax Act 1979.In section 89(1), paragraph (b) and the word “or” preceding it.
1988 c. 1.The Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988.In section 127(3), paragraph (b) and the word “or” preceding it.Insection 230, the word “either”, the words from “or to” to “Schedule 19” and the words “in either case”.In section 239(7), thewords “subsections (5) to (7) of section 430 and”.In section 249(3), thewords “and paragraph 12(1) to (3) of Schedule 19”.In section 250(7), thewords “and paragraph 12 of Schedule 19”.Section 414(3).In section 416(1),the words from “except” to “Schedule 19”.Sections 423 to 430.Insection 539(1), the words “including tax under section 426”.In section681, in subsection (1), paragraph (b) and the word “and” preceding it andsubsections (2) and (3).Section 686(3) and (4).Section 687(3)(b) and (c).Insection 701(8), the words “426(3)”.Section 742(9)(d) and (10).In section825(1)(a), the words from “and any” to “430(7)(a)”.In Schedule 4,paragraph 10(3).In Schedule 8, in paragraph 7(3), the second “and”.Schedule 19.In Schedule 29, in the Table in paragraph 32, theentries relating to section 29(2) of the Taxes Management Act 1970 andsections 89(1)(b) and 136(10)(b) of the Capital Gains Tax Act 1979.
1988 c. 39.The Finance Act 1988.Section 102(2)(a).
1The repeal in section 98 of the Taxes Management Act 1970 and the repealof paragraph 17 of Schedule 19 to the Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988have effect on and after the day on which this Act is passed.
2The repeal in section 89 of the Capital Gains Tax Act 1979 (and thecorresponding repeal in Schedule 29 to the Income and Corporation Taxes Act1988) have effect where the due date of issue of the share capital issued toa close company falls in an accounting period of the company beginning after31st March 1989.
3The repeal of section 414(3) of the Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988has effect from 1st April 1989.
4The repeal of sections 423 to 430 of, and Schedule 19 to, the Income andCorporation Taxes Act 1988 has effect in accordance with section 103 of thisAct.
5The repeals in section 681 of the Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988have effect in relation to the income of bodies corporate for accountingperiods beginning after 31st March 1989.
6The remaining repeals have effect in relation to accounting periodsbeginning after 31st March 1989.

Part VI  Capital Allowances

1968 c. 3.The Capital Allowances Act 1968.Section 9(b).Section 14.Section 50.Section 67(11).In section 68, insubsections (1) and (3), the words “or forestry”, in each place wherethey occur, and in subsection (2), the words “and forestryincome”.Section 80.In section 87(4), the words “or forestry”, in bothplaces where they occur.In section 92(5), the words “allowed or” and thewords “balancing allowance or”.Section 93(1) and (2).Schedule 8.
1971 c. 68.The Finance Act 1971.In Schedule 8, paragraph 2 and, in paragraph 7, in sub-paragraph (1) thewords “Subject to sub-paragraph (2) below” and the words from “byreason of” to the end of paragraph (b) and sub-paragraph (2).
1978 c. 42.The Finance Act 1978.In Schedule 6, paragraph 8.
1980 c. 48.The Finance Act 1980.In section 74(6), the words from the beginning to “and”.In section75(6), the words from the beginning to “and”.
1982 c. 39.The Finance Act 1982.In Schedule 12, paragraph 11.
1986 c. 41.The Finance Act 1986.Section 56(5).In Schedule 15, in paragraphs 1 to 3, the words “orforestry”, in each place where they occur, in paragraph 7(3), the words “subject to paragraph 9 below”, and in paragraph 11, the words “andforestry income” and the words “or forestry income”.
1988 c. 1.The Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988.In section 521(5), the words “within the terms of section 839”.
1The repeal in paragraph 7(1)(b) of Schedule 8 to the Finance Act 1971 haseffect in cases where machinery or plant is brought into use on or after theday on which this Act is passed.
2The repeals in sections 68 and 87(4) of the Capital Allowances Act 1968and in paragraphs 1 to 3 and 11 of Schedule 15 to the Finance Act 1986 haveeffect in relation to chargeable periods beginning on or after 6th April 1993.
3The repeal in section 521(5) of the Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988has effect in accordance with paragraph 27 of Schedule 13 to this Act.
4The repeals of the provisions listed in sub-paragraph (5) of paragraph 28of Schedule 13 to this Act have effect in accordance with that paragraph.

Part VII  Capital Gains

1973 c. 51.The Finance Act 1973.In section 38(3B)(a), the words “within the period of two years endingat the date of the disposal”.
1979 c. 14.The Capital Gains Tax Act 1979.Section 126(7)(b).Section 142A(5)(c).In Schedule 4, in paragraph 1(2), thewords “at the rate of 50 per cent.,”, in paragraph 3(1), the words from “by virtue” to “(settled property)”, in paragraph 3(2), the words “at the rate of 50 per cent.,” and in paragraph 4(4), the words “(taking account” onwards.
1980 c. 48.The Finance Act 1980.Section 79.
1981 c. 35.The Finance Act 1981.Section 78.Section 96(3)(e) and (4).
1982 c. 39.The Finance Act 1982.Sections 81 and 82.
1984 c. 43.The Finance Act 1984.Section 64(2)(a).
1984 c. 51.The Inheritance Tax Act 1984.In section 97(2), the words from “and in this section” to the end.
1985 c. 54.The Finance Act 1985.In section 70(10), paragraph (a) and the word “and” following it.
1986 c. 41.The Finance Act 1986.In section 58(2), paragraph (b) and the word “and” precedingit.Section 101(2).
1987 c. 51.The Finance (No.2) Act 1987.Section 78.
1988 c. 1.The Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988.In Schedule 29, in the Table in paragraph 32, the entry relating to section126(7) of the Capital Gains Tax Act 1979.
1The repeal in the Finance Act 1973 has effect in accordance with section130 of this Act.
2The repeal in section 142A of the Capital Gains Tax Act 1979 has effectin accordance with section 92 of this Act.
3The repeal of section 81 of the Finance Act 1982 has effect in relationto disposals on or after 6th April 1989 or, in the case of section 81(1)(b),assets acquired on or after that date.
4The repeal of section 64(2)(a) of the Finance Act 1984 has effect inaccordance with section 139(1) of this Act.
5The repeal in section 97(2) of the Inheritance Tax Act 1984 has effect inaccordance with section 138(7) of this Act.
6The repeal in the Finance (No.2) Act 1987 has effect in accordance withsection 140 of this Act.
7The remaining repeals have effect in relation to disposals on or after14th March 1989 (except that they shall not have effect in relation to sucha disposal in a case where the enactment in question operates in consequenceof relief having been given under section 79 of the Finance Act 1980 inrespect of a disposal made before that date).

Part VIII  Management

1970 c. 9.The Taxes Management Act 1970.Section 16(6).In section 20, subsections (4) and (5) and, in subsection(6), the words “and in relation” onwards.In section 20B(7), the wordsfrom “to a person” to “daughter”.Sections 37 to 39.In section 40(2),the words “Subject to section 41 below,”.Section 41.In section 53(1), thewords “and the reference” onwards.In section 61(5), the words “withinthe said five days” and the words from “The costs” to “thecollector, and”.Section 62(3), so far as unrepealed.Section 64(3), so faras unrepealed.Section 70(5).Section 86(6).Section 87(4) and (5).In section 98,in the Table, in column 1, in the entry relating to Part III of the TaxesManagement Act 1970, the words “, except sections 16 and 24(2)” and theentry relating to section 481(5)(k) of the Income and Corporation Taxes Act1988.In section 118(1), the definition of “neglect”.
1973 c. 51.The Finance Act 1973.In Schedule 16A, paragraph 10.
1975 c. 45.The Finance (No.2) Act 1975.In section 47(1), the words “of not less than £25”.
1976 c. 24.The Development Land Tax Act 1976.In Schedule 8, paragraphs 17 and 18, so far as unrepealed.
1980 c. 48.The Finance Act 1980.Section 62.
1982 c. 39.The Finance Act 1982.Section 69.
1987 c. 51.The Finance (No.2) Act 1987.In section 84, subsections (1) to (3) and (5) to (8).
1988 c. 1.The Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988.In section 824, in subsections (1)(a) and (b), the words “of not lessthan £25” and, in subsection (5), the words “of not less than£25” and paragraph (b) and the word “and” preceding it.Insection 825(2), the words “of not less than £100”.In Schedule 19A,paragraph 10.
1988 c. 39.The Finance Act 1988.In section 126, subsection (1) and, in subsection (4)(b), the words “and(9)”.
In Schedule 3, paragraph 29.
1989 c. 26.The Finance Act 1989.Section 165(2).
1The repeals in sections 16, 53 and 98 of the Taxes Management Act 1970have effect in accordance with section 164 of this Act.
2The repeals in sections 20 and 20B of the Taxes Management Act 1970 andsection 126 of the Finance Act 1988 have effect with respect to notices given,or warrants issued, on or after the day on which this Act is passed.
3The repeals of sections 37 to 39, in section 40, of section 41 and insection 118 of the Taxes Management Act 1970 and in Schedule 3 to the FinanceAct 1988 have effect in accordance with section 149 of this Act.
4The repeals in section 61 of the Taxes Management Act 1970 come into forceon the day appointed under section 152(7) of this Act.
5The repeals in sections 86 and 87 of the Taxes Management Act 1970, theFinance (No.2) Act 1975, the Finance Act 1980 and sections 824 and 825 of theIncome and Corporation Taxes Act 1988 have effect in accordance with section158 of this Act.
6The repeal in the Finance Act 1982 has effect in accordance with section156(4) of this Act.
7The repeal of subsection (2) of section 165 of this Act has effect inrelation to failures beginning on or after the day appointed under thatsubsection.

Part IX  Stamp Duty: Insurance

54 & 55 Vict. c. 39.The Stamp Act 1891.Section 91.Section 98(1).Section 100.Section 118.In Schedule 1, paragraph(3) of the heading beginning “Bond, Covenant, or Instrument of any kindwhatsoever”, the whole of the heading beginning “Insurance”, and thewhole of the heading beginning “Policy of Life Insurance”.
4 & 5 Eliz. 2 c. 54.The Finance Act 1956.Section 38.
4 & 5 Eliz. 2 c. 11 (N.I.).The Finance Act (Northern Ireland) 1956.Section 6.
7 & 8 Eliz. 2 c. 58.The Finance Act 1959.In section 30(4), the words preceding paragraph (a) and the words followingparagraph (c).
7 & 8 Eliz. 2 c. 9 (N.I.).The Finance Act (Northern Ireland) 1959.In section 5(4), the words preceding paragraph (a) and the words followingparagraph (c).
1966 c. 18.The Finance Act 1966.Section 47.
1966 c. 21 (N.I.).The Finance Act (Northern Ireland) 1966.Section 5.
1970 c. 24.The Finance Act 1970.In Schedule 7, paragraphs 7(4) and 17.
1970 c. 21 (N.I.).The Finance Act (Northern Ireland) 1970.In Schedule 2, paragraphs 7(4) and 17.
1982 c. 39.The Finance Act 1982.Section 130.
1988 c. 1.The Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988.In Schedule 14, in paragraph 3(4) the words from “and section 100” tothe end.

These repeals have effect in accordance with section 173 of this Act.

Part X  Rates of Interest

1970 c. 9.The Taxes Management Act 1970.Section 89.
1970 c. 24.The Finance Act 1970.Section 30.
1970 c. 21 (N.I.).The Finance Act (Northern Ireland) 1970.Section 1(1) and (2).
1973 c. 51.The Finance Act 1973.In Schedule 16A, in paragraph 3(4), para-graph (a) and the word “and”following it and the words “they apply”.
1975 c. 22.The Oil Taxation Act 1975.In Schedule 2, in the Table in paragraph 1, the entry relating to section89 of the Taxes Management Act 1970.
1975 c. 45.The Finance (No.2) Act 1975.Section 47(2).
1980 c. 1.The Petroleum Revenue Tax Act 1980.Section 2(3).
1984 c. 51.The Inheritance Tax Act 1984.Section 233(2) and (4).
1986 c. 41.The Finance Act 1986.Section 92(4) and (5).In Schedule 19, paragraph 32.
1987 c. 51.The Finance (No.2) Act 1987.Section 89.
1988 c. 1.The Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988.In section 824, subsection (1A), in subsection (2) the words “and(1A)” and in subsection (6) the words “Without prejudice to subsection(1A) above”.In section 825, subsection (2A) and in subsection (5) the words “Without prejudice to subsection (2A) above”.In Schedule 19A, inparagraph 3(4), para-graph (a) and the word “and” following it and thewords “they apply”.
1988 c. 39.The Finance Act 1988.In Schedule 13, paragraphs 7(b) and (f) and 8.

These repeals have effect in accordance with section 178(7) of this Act.

Part XI  Broadcasting

1981 c. 68.The Broadcasting Act 1981.Section 32(4A).In section 35(1)(b)(ii), the words “in the case of secondcategory profits,”.
1982 c. 39.The Finance Act 1982.In section 144, subsections (1), (2), (4) and (5).
1984 c. 46.The Cable and Broadcasting Act 1984.Section 40(2).In Schedule 5, in paragraph 40, sub-paragraphs (7), (8) and(9).
1986 c. 41.The Finance Act 1986.In Schedule 22, paragraph 1, and paragraphs 4 to 8.

These repeals have effect on 1st January 1990.

Part XII  Government Stock: Redemption

11 and 12 Geo. 5 c. 32.The Finance Act 1921.Sections 50 and 51.Schedule 3.
5 and 6 Geo. 6 c. 21.The Finance Act 1942.In Schedule 11, in Part II, the amendments of the Finance Act 1921.
9 and 10 Geo. 6 c. 64.The Finance Act 1946.Section 66.
1969 c. 48.The Post Office Act 1969.Section 108(1)(c).
1982 c. 41.The Stock Transfer Act 1982.Section 4.

So far as relating to stock registered in the National Savings StockRegister these repeals have effect on the coming into force of the firstregulations made by virtue of section 3(1)(bb) of the National Debt Act 1972and so far as relating to other stock and bonds they have effect on the cominginto force of the first regulations made by virtue of section 47(1)(bb) of theFinance Act 1942.

Part XIII  National Savings

1971 c. 29.The National Savings Bank Act 1971.Section 5(2), (5), (6) and (7).In section 26(2), paragraph (b) and the word “or” preceding it.
1982 c. 39.The Finance Act 1982.In Schedule 20, paragraph 4(2).

These repeals, apart from the repeal of section 5(2), (5) and (6) of theNational Savings Bank Act 1971, come into force on 1st October 1989.

Part XIV  Tithe Redemption

26 Geo. 5 & 1 Edw. 8 c. 43.The Tithe Act 1936.Section 2(1).In section 4(2), in paragraph (a) the words “the amount”onwards.Section 7.Part II.Section 31(7).In section 47(1), the definition of “interest date”.In section 47(4), the words “of any stock, or”.InSchedule 7, paragraph 3(a) of Part I, Part II, and paragraph 2 of Part III.
5 & 6 Geo. 6 c. 21.The Finance Act 1942.In Schedule 11, in Part I the entry relating to Redemption Stock and inPart II the amendment of the Tithe Act 1936.
14 & 15 Geo. 6 c. 62.The Tithe Act 1951.In section 8(2), the words from “which” to “Act”, and the words “and appended” onwards.
6 & 7 Eliz. 2 c. 55.The Local Government Act 1958.In Schedule 8, paragraph 15.
1968 c. 13.The National Loans Act 1968.In section 16(7), the words “Part II of the Tithe Act 1936”.Section16(9)(a).In section 22(3), the words “Part II of the Tithe Act 1936”.InSchedule 1, the entries relating to section 26 of the Tithe Act 1936.
1972 c. 65.The National Debt Act 1972.In section 15(1), the words “section 24 of the Tithe Act 1936”.
1979 c. 14.The Capital Gains Tax Act 1979.In Schedule 2, in Part II, the entry relating to securities issued underPart II of the Tithe Act 1936.

These repeals have effect from the day appointed under section 187(2)of this Act.

Footnotes

  1. X1
    The text of ss. 1-5, 8(2), 15-17, 28, 29, 187(1), 188, Sch.17 Pt. I was taken from SIF Group 40:1 (Customs and Excise: Customs and Excise Duties), the text of ss. 18-27, 29, 186(2), 187(1), 188, Sch. 3, Sch. 17 Pt. III was taken from SIF Group 40:2 (Customs and Excise: Value added Tax and Car Tax), the text of ss. 30-90, 91(1)(3), 92(1)(2)(4)-(7), 93-95, 96(1)(2)(4),97-121, 130, 138, 142-170, 178-180, 182, 186(1)(3), 187(1), 188, Schs. 4-13,Sch. 17 Pts IV-VI, VIII, X was taken from SIF Group 63:1 (Income, Corporation and Capital Gains Taxes: Income and Corporation Taxes), the text of ss. 91(2)(3), 92(3)-(7), 96(3), 107, 122-137, 139-141, 186(1)(3), 187, 188, Sch.12 para. 6, Schs. 14, 15, Sch. 17 Pts. VII, XIV was taken from SIF Group 63:2 (Income, Corporation and Capital Gains Taxes: Capital Gains Tax), the text of ss. 138(6)-(12), 171, 172, 178, 179(1)(d)(e)(3)(4), 180(4)(7), 186(1)(3),187(1), 188, Sch. 17 Pt. X was taken from SIF Group 65 (Inheritance Tax), the text of ss. 181, 187(1), 188, Sch. 16, Sch. 17 Pt. XI was taken from SIF Group96 (Posts and Telecommunications), the text of ss. 185, 187, 188, Sch. 17 Pt. XIV was taken from SIF Group 98:5 (Property, England and Wales: Tithe), the text of ss. 183, 187, 188, Sch. 17 Pts. XII, XIV was taken from SIF Group 99:3 (Public Finance and Economic Controls: National Debt), the text of ss. 6, 7,8(1), 9-14, 187(1), 188, Schs. 1, 2, Sch. 17 Pt. II was taken from SIF Group 107:2 (Road Traffic: Vehicle Excise Duty), the text of ss. 142(9)(10), 184,187(1), 188, Sch. 17 Pt. XIII was taken from SIF Group 110 (Savings Banks) andthe text of ss. 173-178, 179(1)(f)(4), 180(5)(7), 186(1), 187(1), 188, Sch.17 Pt. IX was taken from SIF Group 114 (Stamp Duty). This Act is presented basically in the form in which it appears in the 1990 Edition of The Taxes Acts edited by the Inland Revenue and published by HMSO (any references incommentary to volumes 1, 2, etc are to volumes of that edition). The style of editing differs from that applicable to most Acts published in Statutes in Force.
  2. C1
    General amendments etc. to Tax Acts (or Income Tax Acts or Corporation Tax Acts as the case may be) made by Taxes Management Act 1970 (c. 9, SIF 63:1), s. 41A(7) (as added by Finance Act 1990 (c. 29, SIF 63:1), s. 95(1)(2)), British Telecommunications Act 1981 (c. 38, SIF 96), s. 82(2)(7);Telecommunications Act 1984 (c. 12, SIF 96), s. 72(3); Finance Act 1984 (c. 43, SIF 63:1), ss. 82(6), 85(2), 89(1)(7), 96(1)(7), 98(7), Sch. 9 para. 3(2)(9), Sch. 16 paras. 6, 12 and Finance Act 1985 (c. 54, SIF 63:1), ss. 72(1), 74(5), Sch. 23 para. 15(4), S.I. 1987/530, regs. 11(2), 13(1), 14, Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988 (c. 1, SIF 63:1), ss. 4, 6, 7, 9, 32, 34, 78, 134, 135, 141, 142, 185, 191, 193, 194, 195, 200, 203, 209, 212, 213, 219, 247, 253, 272, 287, 314, 315, 317, 318, 325, 326, 327, 345, 350, 351, 368, 375, 381, 397, 414, 432, 440, 442, 446, 458, 460, 461, 463, 463(2)(3) (as added by Finance Act 1990 (c. 29, SIF 63:1), s. 50(2)), 468, 474, 475, 486, 490, 491,503, 511, 518, 524, 532, 544, 550, 556, 558, 569, 572, 582, 595, 601, 613, 617, 619, 621, 639, 656, 660, 663, 676, 689, 691, 694, 700, 701, 714, 716, 739, 743, 754, 763, 776, 780, 781, 782, 787, 789, 811, 828, 829, 832, 833, 834, 835, 837, 838, 839, 840, 841, 842, Sch. 2 para. 5, Sch. 4 para. 5, Sch. 13 para. 10, Sch. 16 para. 10, Sch. 21 para. 6, Sch. 26 para. 1, Sch. 27 para. 20, Finance Act 1988 (c. 39, SIF 63:1), ss. 66, 127(1)(6), Sch. 12 para. 6, Capital Allowances Act 1990 (c. 1, SIF 63:1), ss. 28(1), 68(8), 74, 82, 83(5),148(5), 163(4), 164(2), S.I. 1990/627 and Finance Act 1990 (c. 29, SIF 63:1), s. 25(10)
  3. X2
    General amendments to Tax Acts, Income Tax Acts, and/or Corporation Tax Acts made by legislation after 1.2.1991 are noted against Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988 (c. 1, SIF 63:1) but not against each Act
  4. F1
    S. 1(1)(3) repealed by Finance Act 1990 (c. 29, SIF 40:1),s. 132, Sch. 19 Pt. I Note
  5. M1
    1979c. 5.
  6. M2
    1979 c. 5.
  7. F2
    S. 3 repealed (1.6.1993) by Finance Act 1991 (c. 31, SIF 40:1), ss. 7, 123, Sch. 19 Pt. II; S.I. 1993/1152, art. 3, Sch. 1 (with arts. 4-8)
  8. M3
    1979 c. 4.
  9. F3
    S. 6(1)(2)(5)(7) repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  10. F4
    S. 6(3)(4), Sch. 1 Pt. II, Sch. 2 para. 3 repealed byFinance Act 1990 (c. 29, SIF 58), s. 132, Sch. 19 Pt. II Note 3
  11. F5
    S. 6(6) repealed (27.7.1993 with effect in relation to licences taken out after 16.3.1993) by 1993 c. 34, s. 213, Sch. 23 Pt. I(6)
  12. F6
    S. 7 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  13. F7
    S. 8 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  14. F8
    S. 9 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  15. F9
    S. 10 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  16. F10
    S. 11 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  17. F11
    S. 12 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  18. F12
    S. 13 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  19. F13
    S. 14(1)(3)(5)(7) repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  20. F14
    S. 14(2)(4)(6) repealed (1.10.1991) by Finance Act 1991 (c. 31, SIF 107:2), ss. 10, 123, Sch. 19 Pt. IV; S.I. 1991/2021, art. 2.
  21. F15
    S. 15 repealed (1.1.1995) by 1994 c. 9, s. 258, Sch. 26 Pt. III, note (with s. 19(3)); S.I. 1994/2679, art. 3
  22. F16
    S. 16(3) repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  23. M4
    1979 c. 2.
  24. F17
    S. 18 repealed (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 101(1) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 23, s. 100(2), Sch. 15
  25. F18
    S. 19 repealed (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 101(1) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 23, s. 100(2), Sch. 15
  26. F19
    S. 20 repealed (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 101(1) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 23, s. 100(2), Sch. 15
  27. F20
    S. 21 repealed (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 101(1) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 23, s. 100(2), Sch. 15
  28. F21
    S. 22 repealed (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 101(1) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 23, s. 100(2), Sch. 15
  29. F22
    S. 23 repealed (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 101(1) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 23, s. 100(2), Sch. 15
  30. F23
    S. 24 repealed (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 101(1) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 23, s. 100(2), Sch. 15
  31. F24
    S. 25 repealed (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 101(1) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 23, s. 100(2), Sch. 15
  32. F25
    S. 26 repealed (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 101(1) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 23, s. 100(2), Sch. 15
  33. M5
    1979 c. 3.
  34. M6
    1979 c. 3.
  35. F26
    S. 29 ceases to have effect (1.12.1995 with effect as mentioned in s. 20(5) of the amending Act) by 1995 c. 4, s. 20(3); S.I. 1995/2892, art. 2
  36. C2
    See Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988 (c. 1,SIF 63:1), s. 257for 1989–1990and see Income andCorpartion Taxes Act 1988 (c. 1, SIF 63:1), 257–257Ffor1990–1991
  37. M7
    1988 c. 39.
  38. F27
    S. 33(6) repealed (27.7.1999 with effect for the year 2000-2001 and subsequent years of assessment) by 1999 c. 16, s. 139, Sch. 20 Pt. III(3), note 2
  39. F28
    Words in s. 33(10) repealed (16.7.1992) by virtue of Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), ss. 20, 82, Sch. 5 para. 10, Sch. 18 Pt. VII(1)
  40. F29
    Words in s. 33(10) repealed (27.7.1999 with effect for the year 2000-2001 and subsequent years of assessment) by virtue of 1999 c. 16, s. 139, Sch. 20 Pt. III(3), note 2
  41. F30
    S. 33(11)-(13) repealed (27.7.1999 with effect for the year 2000-2001 and subsequent years of assessment) by 1999 c. 16, s. 139, Sch. 20 Pt. III(3), note 2
  42. C3
    For earlier years see Table K, Vol. 1
  43. C4
    S. 41 extended (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 139(3)
  44. F31
    Ss. 54-57 repealed (31.1.1997 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 8 Pt. II(2), note of the amending Act) by 1997 c. 58, s. 52, Sch. 8 Pt. II(2) (with s. 3(3))
  45. C5
    S. 54 restricted (31.7.1997 with effect for the year 1997-1998 and subsequent years of assessment) by 1997 c. 58, s. 17(1)-(5) (with s. 3(3))
  46. F32
    S. 54(2A) inserted (3.5.1994 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 10 para. 4(2) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 9, s. 83, Sch. 10 para. 4(1)
  47. F33
    Words and paras. (a)(b) substituted for words in s. 54(3) (3.5.1994 with effect in relation to payments on or after 6.4.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 83, Sch. 10 para. 2(2)(4)
  48. F34
    S. 54(3A)-(3C) inserted (3.5.1994 with effect in relation to payments on or after 6.4.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 83, Sch. 10 para. 2(3)(4)
  49. C6
    For regulations see S.I. 1989/2387andS.I. 1989/2389 (in Part III Vol. 5under “Private medicalinsurance”)
  50. F35
    Words in s. 54(6)(b) inserted (29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 129(2)
  51. F36
    Ss. 54-57 repealed (31.1.1997 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 8 Pt. II(2), note of the amending Act) by 1997 c. 58, s. 52, Sch. 8 Pt. II(2) (with s. 3(3))
  52. F37
    S. 55(2)(ba)(bb) inserted (3.5.1994 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 10 para. 5(8) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 9, s. 83, Sch. 10 para. 5(2)
  53. F38
    Word in s. 55(2)(c) inserted (3.5.1994 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 10 para. 5(8) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 9, s. 83, Sch. 10 para. 5(3)(a)
  54. F39
    S. 55(2)(e) and the word “and” immediately preceding it repealed (3.5.1994 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 10 para. 5(8) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 9, ss. 83, 258, Sch. 10 para. 5(3)(b), Sch. 26 Pt. V(3), Note 2
  55. F40
    S. 55(2A)-(2D) inserted (3.5.1994 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 10 para. 5(8) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 9, s. 83, Sch. 10 para. 5(4)
  56. F41
    S. 55(3)-(6) repealed (3.5.1994 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 10 para. 5(8) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 9, ss. 83, 258, Sch. 10 para. 5(5), Sch. 26 Pt. V(3), Note 2
  57. M8
    1982 c.50.
  58. F42
    Paras. (a)(b) substituted for words in s. 55(9) (3.5.1994 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 10 para. 5(8) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 9, s. 83, Sch. 10 para. 5(6)
  59. F43
    S. 55(10)-(13) inserted (3.5.1994 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 10 para. 5(8) of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 9, s. 83, Sch. 10 para. 5(7)
  60. F44
    Ss. 54-57 repealed (31.1.1997 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 8 Pt. II(2), note of the amending Act) by 1997 c. 58, s. 52, Sch. 8 Pt. II(2) (with s. 3(3))
  61. C7
    For regulations see S.I. 1989/2389 (inPart III Vol. 5under “Private medical insurance”)
  62. F45
    Ss. 54-57 repealed (31.1.1997 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 8 Pt. II(2), note of the amending Act) by 1997 c. 58, s. 52, Sch. 8 Pt. II(2) (with s. 3(3))
  63. C8
    See S.I. 1989/2387
  64. F46
    S. 57(1)(aa) inserted (29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 129(3)
  65. F47
    S. 57(3)(a) substituted (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 18 para. 17 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 132, Sch. 18 para. 12(2)(a)
  66. F48
    Words in s. 57(3)(b) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 18 para. 17 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 132, Sch. 18 para. 12(2)(b)
  67. F49
    Words in s. 57(3)(c) substituted (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 18 para. 17 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 132, Sch. 18 para. 12(2)(c)
  68. F50
    Words in s. 57(3) substituted (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 18 para. 17 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 132, Sch. 18 para. 12(2)(d)
  69. F51
    S. 57(3A) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 18 para. 17 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 132, Sch. 18 para. 12(3)
  70. F52
    Words in s. 57(4) repealed (16.7.1992) by virtue of Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), ss. 20, 82, Sch. 5 para. 10, Sch. 18 Pt. VII(1)
  71. F53
    S. 59 repealed (28.7.2000 with effect as mentioned in s. 41(9) of the amending Act) by 2000 c. 17, ss. 41(7), 156, Sch. 40 Pt. II(1), note 3
  72. F54
    S. 60(3) repealed (1.5.1995 with effect as mentioned in s. 74(2), Sch. 29 Pt. VIII(8) of the amending Act) by 1995 c. 4, ss. 74(1), 162, Sch. 17 Pt. III para. 25, Sch. 29 Pt. VIII(8)
  73. F55
    S. 61 repealed (19.3.1997 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 18 Pt. VI(3), notes 1, 2 of the amending Act) by 1997 c. 16, ss. 61(2)(3), 113, Sch. 18 Pt. VI(3)
  74. F56
    S. 63 repealed(having effect for the year 1991-92 and subsequent years of assessment) by Finance Act 1991 (c. 31, SIF 63:1), s. 123, Sch. 19 Pt.V Note 6.
  75. C9
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—.roll-over relief for disposal of assets to employeeshare ownership trusts
  76. F57
    Words in s. 67(2)(a) substituted (31.7.1998) by 1998 c. 36, s. 46(3), Sch. 7 para. 3
  77. C10
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—.roll-over relief for disposal of assets to employee share ownership trusts
  78. C11
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—.roll-over relief for disposal of assets to employeeshare ownership trusts
  79. C12
    Definition employed for purposes of Finance Act1990 (c. 29) s. 36—roll-over relief where replacement assetowned
  80. F58
    Words in s. 69(1)(c) substituted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 6(2)
  81. F59
    S. 69(1)(e) inserted (28.7.2000) by 2000 c. 17, s. 55(2)
  82. F60
    S. 69(3AA)-(3AD) inserted (28.7.2000) by 2000 c. 17, s. 55(3)
  83. F61
    S. 69(3A) inserted (16.7.1992, the amending provision applying in relation to exchanges made on or after 1.1.1992) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), s. 36(1)(2)
  84. F62
    Words in s. 69(4)(a) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in s. 120(12) of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(3)(a)
  85. F63
    Words in s. 69(4)(b) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in s. 120(12) of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(3)(b)
  86. F64
    Word in s. 69(4)(c) substituted (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in s. 120(12) of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(3)(c)
  87. F65
    S. 69(4ZA) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in s. 120(12) of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(4)
  88. F66
    S. 69(4A) inserted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 6(3)
  89. F67
    Words in s. 69(5) inserted (28.7.2000) by 2000 c. 17, s. 55(4)
  90. F68
    S. 69(5A) inserted (28.7.2000) by 2000 c. 17, s. 55(5)
  91. F69
    Words in s. 69(9) substituted (in relation to tax for the year 1992-1993 and subsequent years subject as mentioned in s. 289 of the substituting Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 10 para. 19(1) (with s. 60, 101(1), 171, 201(3))
  92. C13
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—.roll-over relief for disposal of assets to employeeshare ownership trusts
  93. F70
    Words in s. 70(2) substituted (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the substituting Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 10 para. 19(2) (with ss. 60, 101(1), 201(3))
  94. F71
    S. 70(4) inserted (28.7.2000) by 2000 c. 17, s. 55(6)
  95. C14
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—.roll-over relief for disposal of assets to employeeshare ownership trusts
  96. C15
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—.roll-over relief for disposal of assets to employeeshare ownership trusts
  97. C16
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—.roll-over relief for disposal of assets to employeeshare ownership trusts
  98. M9
    1970 c. 9.
  99. C17
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—.roll-over relief for disposal of assets to employeeshare ownership trusts
  100. F72
    Ss. 78, 79 repealed by Finance Act 1990 (c. 29, SIF 58), s.132, Sch. 19 Pt. IV Note
  101. F73
    S. 80 repealed (31.7.1998) by 1998 c. 36, s. 165, Sch. 27 Pt. III(23)
  102. M10
    1979 c. 14.
  103. F74
    S. 92(3) repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  104. F75
    S. 92(4)-(7) repealed (27.7.1993 with effect for the year 1992-93 and subsequent years of assessment) by 1993 c. 34, s. 213, Sch. 23 Pt. III(12) Note 5
  105. F76
    S. 93 repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in s. 105(1) of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(3), note
  106. F77
    S. 94 repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in s. 105(1) of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(3), note
  107. F78
    S. 95 repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in s. 105(1) of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(3), note
  108. F79
    S. 96(3) repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  109. F80
    S. 97 repealed (31.7.1998 with effect in accordance with Sch. 3 of the amending Act) by 1998 c. 36, s. 165, Sch. 27 Pt. III(2), note
  110. F81
    S. 98 repealed (31.7.1998 with effect in accordance with Sch. 3 of the amending Act) by 1998 c. 36, s. 165, Sch. 27 Pt. III(2), note
  111. F82
    S. 99 repealed (11.5.2001 with application as mentioned in Sch. 33 Pt. 2(10) of the amending Act) by 2001 c. 9, s. 110, Sch. 33 Pt. 2(10), note
  112. F83
    S. 106 repealed (31.7.1997 with effect in relation to distributions made on or after 6.4.1999) by 1997 c. 58, s. 52, Sch. 8 Pt. II(9), note 3
  113. F84
    S. 108 repealed (1.5.1995 with effect for the year 1995-96 and subsequent years of assessment) by 1995 c. 4, s. 162, Sch. 29 Pt. VIII(8), note
  114. F85
    S. 109(1)-(3) repealed (1.5.1995 with effect for the year 1995-96 and subsequent years of assessment) by 1995 c. 4, s. 162, Sch. 29 Pt. VIII(8), note
  115. F86
    S. 116 repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in s. 105(1) of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(3), note
  116. F87
    Ss. 117–120 repealed by Capital Allowance Act 1990 (c.1, SIF 63:1), s. 164(4)(5), Sch. 2
  117. F88
    S. 121 repealed (22.3.2001 with effect as mentioned in s. 579(1) of the amending Act) by 2001 c. 2, s. 580, Sch. 4
  118. F89
    S. 122 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  119. F90
    S. 123(1)(a) repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  120. F91
    S. 124 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  121. F92
    S. 125 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  122. F93
    S. 126 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  123. F94
    S. 127 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  124. F95
    S. 128 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  125. F96
    S. 129 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  126. F97
    S. 130 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  127. F98
    S. 131 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  128. F99
    S. 132 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  129. F100
    S. 133 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  130. F101
    S. 134 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  131. F102
    S. 135 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  132. F103
    S. 136 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  133. F104
    S. 137 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  134. F105
    S. 138 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  135. F106
    S. 139 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  136. F107
    S. 140 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  137. F108
    S. 141 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  138. M11
    1970 c. 9.
  139. M12
    1970 c. 9.
  140. M13
    1970c. 9.
  141. M14
    1970 c. 9.
  142. M15
    1970 c. 9.
  143. M16
    1970 c.9.
  144. F109
    S. 149(3)(c) repealed (31.7.1998 with effect in accordance with Sch. 3 of the amending Act) by 1998 c. 36, s. 165, Sch. 27 Pt. III(2), note
  145. M17
    1973 c. 51.
  146. M18
    1970 c. 9.
  147. M19
    1970 c. 9.
  148. M20
    1970 c. 9.
  149. M21
    1970 c. 9.
  150. M22
    1970 c. 9.
  151. M23
    1970 c. 9.
  152. M24
    1987 c. 51.
  153. F110
    Words in s. 158(2)(a) substituted (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the substituting Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 10 para. 19(3) (with ss. 60, 101(1), 201(3))
  154. M25
    1975 c. 45.
  155. F111
    S. 159 repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as specified in Sch. 18 para. 17 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(8), note
  156. M26
    1970 c. 9.
  157. F112
    S. 160(1)(2)(4) repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as specified in Sch. 18 para. 17 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(8), note
  158. F113
    S. 160(6) repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 22 para. 12 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(12), note
  159. F114
    S. 161 repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as specified in Sch. 18 para. 17 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(8), note
  160. M27
    1970 c. 9.
  161. M28
    1970 c.9.
  162. F115
    S. 165(2) repealed (with effect in relation to failures beginning on or after 20.5.1995) by Finance Act 1989 (c. 26, SIF 63:1), ss. 165(2), 187(1), Sch. 17 Pt. VIII Note 7; S.I. 1994/2508, art. 2
  163. M29
    1970c. 9.
  164. M30
    1970 c. 9.
  165. M31
    1970 c.9.
  166. F116
    S. 168(3) repealed (1.9.1994) by S.I. 1994/1813, reg. 2(2), Sch. 2 Pt. I
  167. F117
    S. 168(8) repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 22 para. 12 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(12), note
  168. M32
    1976 c. 24.
  169. M33
    1970c. 9.
  170. M34
    1970 c. 9.
  171. F118
    S. 170(1) repealed (1.5.1995 with effect as mentioned in s. 39(4)(5) of the amending Act) by 1995 c. 4, s. 162, Sch. 29 Pt. VIII(1), note
  172. F119
    S. 170(2) repealed (16.7.1992 with effect in accordance with s. 32 of the repealing Act) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), ss. 32, 82, Sch. 18 Pt. VII(4)
  173. M35
    1973 c. 51.
  174. M36
    1984 c.51.
  175. M37
    1986 c. 41.
  176. M38
    1984c. 51.
  177. F120
    S. 173 repealed (27.7.1999 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 20 Pt. V(2) of the amending Act) by 1999 c. 16, s. 138, Sch. 20 Pt. V(2), notes 1, 2
  178. M39
    1891 c. 39.
  179. M40
    1966 c. 18.
  180. M41
    1966 c. 21 (N.I.).
  181. F121
    S. 174 repealed (with effect as mentioned in Sch. 20 Pt. V(5) notes 1, 2 of the amending Act) by Finance Act 1999 (c. 16) s. 139, {Sch. 20 Pt. V(5)}
  182. F122
    Words in s. 175(1)(a) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 112(6) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 1999 (c. 16) ss. 112(4), 122, {Sch. 14 para. 23}
  183. C18
    S. 178 applied by Ports Act 1991 (c. 52, SIF 58), s. 14(4).
    S. 178 applied (27.7.1993) by 1993 c. 34, s. 173, Sch. 19 Pt. II para. 11(4)
    S. 178 applied (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 199 of 1994 c. 9) by 1970 c. 9, s. 59C (as inserted by 1994 c. 9, s. 194); S.I. 1998/3173, art, 2
    S. 178 applied (1.5.1995) by 1995 c. 4, s. 157(6)
    S. 178 extended (1.5.1995) by 1995 c. 4, s. 157(6)
    S. 178 applied (31.7.1997) by 1997 c. 58, s. 3, Sch. 2 para. 12(4)
    S. 178 applied (27.7.1999 with application to instruments executed on or after 1.10.1999) by 1891 c. 39, s. 15A(3) (as substituted (27.7.1999 with application to instruments executed on or after 1.10.1999) by 1999 c. 16, s. 109(1)(4))
    S. 178 applied (27.7.1999 with application in relation to instruments executed on or after 1.10.1999) by ss. 110(1)-(5)(10), 123(4)
    S. 178 applied (5.10.1999) by 1999 c. 10, ss. 10(4), 20(2), Sch. 4 para. 8(2)
    S. 178 applied (1.4.2000) by S.I. 2000/944, art. 25
    S. 178 applied (1.4.2000) by s.I. 2000/944, art. 41(1)
    S. 178 applied (1.4.2000) by S.I. 2000/944, art. 46(1)
    S. 178 applied (1.3.2003) by S.I. 2002/2172, reg. 8(13)
  184. C19
    For regulations see S.I. 1989/1297 (inPart III Vol. 5).And see Tables Iand O Vol. 1
  185. F123
    S. 178(2)(aa) inserted (27.7.1999 with application to instruments executed on or after 1.10.1999) by 1999 c. 16, ss. 109(2)(4), 123(4)
  186. M42
    1894 c. 30.
  187. M43
    1896 c. 28.
  188. M44
    1910 c. 8.
  189. M45
    1925 c. 20.
  190. F124
    Words in s. 178(2)(f) substituted (1.9.1994 with effect as mentioned in s. 199 of the amending Act) by 1994 c. 9, s. 196, Sch. 19 Pt. III para. 44; S.I. 1998/3173, art. 2
  191. F125
    Words in s. 178(2)(f) repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as specified in Sch. 18 para. 17 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, ss. 132, 205, Sch. 18 para. 13, Sch. 41 Pt. V(8), note
  192. M46
    1970 c. 9.
  193. M47
    1973 c. 51.
  194. F126
    S. 178(2)(gg) inserted (6.4.1992) (E.W.S.) by Social Security Act 1990 (c. 27, SIF 113:1) s. 17(10); S.I. 1992/632, art. 2
  195. F127
    Words in s. 178(2)(gg) substituted (1.7.1992) by Social Security (Consequential Provisions) Act 1992 (c. 6), ss. 4, 7(2), Sch. 2 para. 107
  196. F128
    S. 178(2)(gh) inserted (5.10.1999) by 1999 c. 10, ss. 2, 20(2), Sch. 2 Pt. IV para. 10(2)
  197. M48
    1992 c.5.
  198. M49
    1992 c.8.
  199. M50
    1975 c. 22.
  200. F129
    s. 178(2)(i) substituted (in relation to tax for the year 1992-1993 and subsequent years subject as mentioned in s. 289 of the substituting Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 10 para. 19(4) (with ss. 60, 101(1), 171, 201(3))
  201. M51
    1992 c. 12.
  202. M52
    1976 c. 24.
  203. M53
    1984 c. 51.
  204. F130
    Words in s. 178(2)(m) repealed (28.7.2000 with effect as mentioned in s. 11(6) of the amending Act) by 2000 c. 17, s. 156, Sch. 40 Pt. II(17), Note 1
  205. F131
    Words in s. 178(2)(m) repealed (29.4.1996 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 7 paras. 32-35 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, ss. 79(2), 205, Sch. 7 para. 30, Sch. 41 Pt. V(2), note
  206. M54
    1986 c. 41.
  207. F132
    “and” inserted by Finance Act 1990 (c. 29, SIF 58), s.118(8)
  208. F133
    S. 178(2)(n) repealed (1.5.1995) by 1995 c. 4, s. 162, Sch. 29 Pt. XII
  209. F134
    S. 178(2)(o) and word immediately proceeding it inserted (G.B.) by Ports Act 1991 (c. 52, SIF 58), s. 14(5).
  210. F135
    It is provided that s. 178(2)(p) shall be inserted (5.10.1999) by 1999 c. 10, ss. 10(4), 20(2), Sch. 4 para. 8(1)
  211. F136
    S. 178(2)(p) and word “and” preceding inserted (27.7.1999 with application in relation to instruments executed on or after 1.10.1999) by 1999 c. 16, ss. 110(9)(10), 123(4)
  212. F137
    S. 178(2)(q) inserted (E.W.S.) (8.12.2002) by 2002 c. 22, ss. 11, 12, Sch. 1 para. 8(1)(2); S.I. 2002/2866, art. 2(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 2
  213. F138
    S. 178(2)(r) inserted (8.12.2002) by S.I. 2002/2836 (N.I. 2), art. 13(6), Sch. 1 para. 8(1) (with art. 16); S.R. 2002/356, art. 2(2), Sch. 1 Pt. II
  214. C20
    Power of appointment conferred by s. 178(7) partly exercised: 18.8.1989 appointed by S.I. 1989/1298 for all the enactments specified in s. 178(2) other than s. 87A of the 1970 Act and s. 826 of the 1988 Act
  215. M55
    1896 c. 28.
  216. M56
    1910 c. 8.
  217. M57
    1925 c. 20.
  218. M58
    1975 c. 22.
  219. F139
    S. 179(1)(a)(vi) repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  220. F140
    Words in s. 179(1)(b)(i) repealed (29.4.1996 with effect in accordance with Sch. 18 para. 17 of the amending Act) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V
  221. M59
    1970c. 9.
  222. M60
    1973 c. 51.
  223. M61
    1976 c. 24.
  224. M62
    1984 c. 51.
  225. M63
    1986 c.41.
  226. M64
    1894 c. 30.
  227. M65
    1975 c. 7.
  228. M66
    1975 c. 22.
  229. M67
    1980 c. 48.
  230. M68
    1981 c. 35.
  231. M69
    1982 c. 39.
  232. M70
    1976 c. 24.
  233. M71
    1984 c. 51.
  234. M72
    1975 c. 7.
  235. M73
    1986 c. 41.
  236. F141
    S. 181, Sch. 16 repealed (prosp. as mentioned in S.I. 1990/2347, art. 3(3)) by Broadcasting Act 1990 (c. 42, SIF 96), ss. 127-129, 134, 203(3), 204(2), Schs. 9-12, Sch. 21
  237. M74
    1981 c. 68.
  238. C21
    S. 182 restricted (6.4.1997) by 1995 c. 26, s. 109(5) (with 121(5)); S.I. 1997/664, art. 2(3), Sch. Pt. II
    S. 182 restricted (6.4.1997) by S.I. 1995/3213 (N.I. 22), art. 107(2) (with art. 118(5)(6)); S.R. 1997/192, art. 2(b)
  239. F142
    Words in s. 182(1) inserted (1.4.1999) by 1999 c. 2, s. 6, Sch. 6 para. 9(2)(a); S.I. 1999/527, art. 2(b), Sch. 2
  240. F143
    S. 182(1)(a)-(c) and words immediately preceding substituted for words in s. 182(1) (1.4.1999) by 1999 c. 2, s. 6, Sch. 6 para. 9(2)(b); S.I. 1999/527, art. 2(b), Sch. 2
  241. F144
    Words in s. 128(1)(c) substituted (8.12.2002) by 2002 c. 22, s. 53, Sch. 7 para. 1(2)(a); S.I. 2002/2866, art. 2(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 2
  242. F145
    S. 182(2A) inserted (1.4.1999) by 1999 c. 2, s. 6, Sch. 6 para. 9(3); S.I. 1999/527, art. 2(b), Sch. 2
  243. F146
    Words in s. 182(2A)(a) substituted (8.12.2002) by 2002 c. 22, s. 53, Sch. 7 para. 1(2)(b); S.I. 2002/2866, art. 2(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 2
  244. F147
    Word in s. 182(4)(a)(i) repealed (1.2.1999) by 1998 c. 38, s. 152, Sch. 18 Pt. I (with ss. 137(1), 139(2), 141(1), 143(2)); S.I. 1999/118, art. 2
  245. F148
    S. 182(4)(a)(iii)(iv) inserted (1.2.1999) by 1998 c. 38, s. 125, Sch. 12 para. 31(2) (with ss. 137(1), 139(2), 141(1), 143(2)); S.I. 1999/118, art. 2
  246. F149
    Words in s. 182(4)(b) inserted (1.4.1999) by 1999 c. 2, s. 6, Sch. 6 para. 9(4)(a); S.I. 1999/527, art. 2(b), Sch. 2
  247. F150
    S. 182(4)(c)(i)-(iii) and words immediately preceding substituted for words in s. 182(4)(c) (1.4.1999) by 1999 c. 2, s. 6, Sch. 6 para. 9(4)(b); S.I. 1999/527, art. 2(b), Sch. 2
  248. F151
    Words in s. 182(4)(c)(iii) substituted (8.12.2002) by 2002 c. 22, s. 53, Sch. 7 para. 1(2)(c); S.I. 2002/2866, art. 2(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 2
  249. F152
    Words in s. 182(5)(b) inserted (1.4.1999) by 1999 c. 2, s. 6, Sch. 6 para. 9(5); S.I. 1999/527, art. 2(b), Sch. 2
  250. F153
    Words in s. 182(5)(b) substituted (8.12.2002) by 2002 c. 22, s. 53, Sch. 7 para. 1(2)(d); S.I. 2002/2866, art. 2(2), Sch. Pt. 2
  251. F154
    Words in s. 182(6)(e) substituted (1.2.1999) by 1998 c. 38, s. 125, Sch. 12 para. 31(3) (with ss. 137(1), 139(2), 141(1), 143(2)); S.I. 1999/118, art. 2
  252. F155
    S. 182(10): definition of “contributions” inserted (1.4.1999) by 1999 c. 2, s. 6, Sch. 6 para. 9(6); S.I. 1999/527, art. 2(b), Sch. 2
  253. M75
    1989c. 6.
  254. F156
    Words in s. 182(11)(c) substituted (16.7.1996) by S.I. 1996/1298 (N.I. 8), art. 21(1), Sch. 5
  255. F157
    S. 182(11A) inserted (8.12.2002) by 2002 c. 22, s. 53, Sch. 7 para. 1(3); S.I. 2002/2866, art. 2(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 2
  256. M76
    1911 c. 28.
  257. F158
    S. 182A inserted (16.7.1992) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), s. 51(3)
  258. M77
    1942 c. 21.
  259. M78
    1972 c. 65.
  260. M79
    1968 c. 13.
  261. M80
    1971 c. 29.
  262. M81
    1970 c.10.
  263. M82
    1988 c. 1.
  264. M83
    1983 c. 55.
  265. M84
    1979 c. 14.
  266. C22
    Power of appointment conferred by s. 187(2) partly exercised:30.9.1989 appointed by S.I. 1989/1788, art. 2 for the repeal of the enactmentsspecified in Part XIV of Schedule 17 other than section 27 in Part II of theTithe Act 1936 (c. 43)
  267. F159
    Sch. 1 Pt. I repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  268. F160
    S. 6(3)(4), Sch. 1 Pt. II, Sch. 2 para. 3 repealed byFinance Act 1990 (c. 29, SIF 58), s. 132, Sch. 19 Pt. II Note 3
  269. F161
    Sch. 2 paras. 1, 2, 4 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  270. F162
    Sch. 2 paras. 1, 2, 4 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  271. F163
    S. 6(3)(4), Sch. 1 Pt. II, Sch. 2 para. 3 repealed byFinance Act 1990 (c. 29, SIF 58), s. 132, Sch. 19 Pt. II Note 3
  272. F164
    Sch. 2 paras. 1, 2, 4 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 22, ss. 65, 66(1), Sch. 5 Pt. I (with s. 57(4))
  273. F165
    Sch. 3 repealed (1.9.1994) by 1994 c. 23, ss. 100(2), 101(1), Sch. 15
  274. F166
    Sch. 4 repealed (19.3.1997 with effect as mentioned in Sch. 18 Pt. VI(3) notes 1, 2 of the amending Act) by 1997 c. 16, ss. 61(2)(3), 113, Sch. 18 Pt. VI(3)
  275. C23
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  276. C24
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  277. C25
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  278. C26
    Schedule 5 para. 3(3)(c) amended (1.1.1992) by S.I. 1991/2684, arts. 2(1), 4, Sch. 1
  279. F167
    Sch. 5 para. 3(5) inserted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 2
  280. F168
    Sch. 5 paras. 3A-3C inserted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 3
  281. F169
    Sch. 5 paras. 3A-3C inserted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 3
  282. F170
    Sch. 5 paras. 3A-3C inserted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 3
  283. C27
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  284. F171
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 4(2)(c) substituted (1.5.1995 with effect as mentioned in s. 137(9) of the amending Act) by 1995 c. 4, s. 137(5)
  285. F172
    Sch. 5 para. 4(2A)(2B) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(1)(12)
  286. F173
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 4(4) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(5)(12)
  287. F174
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 4(5)(a) repealed (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 119(1)(2), 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(5), note 4
  288. F175
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 4(7) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(6)(12)
  289. F176
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 4(8) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(7)(12)
  290. C28
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  291. F177
    Sch. 5 para. 5(2)(cc) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(8)(12)
  292. C29
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  293. C30
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  294. C31
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  295. F178
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 8 substituted (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the substituting Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 10 para. 19(5) (with s. 60, 101(1), 201(3))
  296. M85
    1992 c. 12.
  297. C32
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  298. F179
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 9(1)(b) substituted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 7(2)
  299. F180
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 9(2)(a) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(9)(a)(12)
  300. F181
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 9(2)(b) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(9)(b)(12)
  301. F182
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 9(2)(c) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(9)(c)(12)
  302. F183
    Sch. 5 para. 9(2ZA) inserted (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(10)(12)
  303. F184
    Sch. 5 para. 9(2A) inserted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 7(3)
  304. C33
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  305. F185
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 10 inserted (29.4.1996 with effect in relation to trusts established on or after 29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 120(11)(a)(12)
  306. C34
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  307. F186
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 11 substituted (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the substituting Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 10 para. 19(5) (with s. 60, 101(1), 201(3))
  308. M86
    1992 c. 12.
  309. C35
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  310. F187
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 12 inserted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 4
  311. F188
    Sch. 5 para. 12A inserted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 5
  312. C36
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  313. C37
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  314. C38
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employeeshare ownership trusts
  315. C39
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29) ss.31–40—roll-over relief for disposal of shares to employee share ownership trusts
  316. F189
    Sch. 5 para. 17 inserted (3.5.1994) by 1994 c. 9, s. 102, Sch. 13 para. 8
  317. C40
    Sch. 5 applied (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the applying Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 228(7), 235(8), 289 (with ss. 60, 101(1), 171, 201(3))
  318. F190
    Sch. 10 repealed (29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, s. 205, Sch. 41 Pt. V(3) (with savings in Pt. IV Ch. II (ss. 80-105))
  319. F191
    Sch. 11 repealed (29.4.1996) by 1996 c. 8, ss. 104, 205, Sch. 14 para. 57, Sch. 41 Pt. V(3) (with savings in Pt. IV Ch. II (ss. 80-105))
  320. F192
    Sch. 12 para. 6 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with ss. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  321. F193
    Sch. 13 paras. 1–26, 28–30 repealed by Capital Allowance Act 1990 (c. 1), s. 164(4)(5), Sch. 2
  322. F194
    Sch. 13 para. 27 repealed (22.3.2001 with effect as mentioned in s. 579(1) of the amending Act) by 2001 c. 2, s. 580, Sch. 4
  323. F195
    Sch. 13 paras. 1–26, 28–30 repealed by Capital Allowance Act 1990 (c. 1), s. 164(4)(5), Sch. 2
  324. F196
    Sch. 14 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  325. F197
    Sch. 14 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  326. F198
    Sch. 14 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  327. F199
    Sch. 14 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  328. F200
    Sch. 14 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  329. F201
    Sch. 14 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  330. F202
    Sch. 14 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  331. F203
    Sch. 15 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  332. F204
    Sch. 15 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  333. F205
    Sch. 15 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  334. F206
    Sch. 15 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  335. F207
    Sch. 15 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  336. F208
    Sch. 15 repealed (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch.12 (with s. 201(3), Sch. 11 paras. 22, 26(2), 27)
  337. M87
    1981 c. 68.
  338. M88
    1981 c. 68.
  339. M89
    1981 c. 68.
  340. M90
    1981 c. 68.
  341. M91
    1981 c. 68.
  342. F209
    S. 181, Sch. 16 repealed (prosp. as mentioned in S.I. 1990/2347, art. 3(3)) by Broadcasting Act 1990 (c. 42, SIF 96), ss. 127-129, 134, 203(3), 204(2), Schs. 9-12, Sch. 21
  343. F210
    Sch. 17 Pt. II repealed (20.7.1998) by S.I. 1998/1446, art. 30(2), Sch. 2 Pt. I
  344. C41
    Sch. 17 Pt. V restricted (retrospectively) by 1993 c. 34, s. 79(2)(a)
  345. M92
    1983 c. 55.
  346. M93
    1983 c.55.
  347. M94
    1983 c. 55.
  348. M95
    1983 c. 55.
  349. M96
    1983 c. 55.
  350. M97
    1983 c. 55.
  351. M98
    1983 c. 55.
  352. M99
    1983 c. 55.
  353. C42
    See Finance Act 1990 (c. 29), s. 56, Sch. 10para. 11(4)–definition employed for purposes of Finance Act1990 (c. 29), Sch. 10–convertible securities
  354. F211
    Sch. 11 para. 1(3A)-(3G) substituted (retrospectively and deemed always to have had effect) for para. 1(3A) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), s. 33, Sch. 7 paras. 2, 7, 8
  355. M100
    1992 c. 12.
  356. F212
    Words in Sch. 11 para. 1(8)(c) substituted (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the substituting Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 10 para. 19(6)(a) (with s. 60, 101(1), 201(3))
  357. F213
    Finance Act 1990 (c. 29), s. 58(2)(7)deemedalways to have had effect. Previously
    “the security was issued before9th June 1989 and was quoted in the official list of a recognised stockexchange on 8th June 1989”
  358. F214
    Finance Act 1990 (c. 29), s. 58(3)(4)respectively–deemed always to have had effect (subs. (7))
  359. F215
    Finance Act 1990 (c. 29), s. 58(5)(7)deemedalways to have had effect
  360. F216
    Finance Act 1990 (c. 29), s. 58(6)(a)(7)deemedalways to have had effect. Previously
    “and (12)”
  361. F217
    Sch. 11 para. 2(13)(c)-(e) substituted(retrospectively and deemed always to have had effect) for sub-para. (13)(c)(d) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), s. 33, Sch. 7 paras.3, 7, 8
  362. F218
    Finance Act 1990 (c. 29), s. 56, Sch. 10 para. 27(2),29(1)–deemed always to have had effect
  363. C43
    Sch. 11 para. 7(1) excluded (27.7.1993 with effect for the year 1992-93 and subsequent years of assessment) by 1993 c. 34, ss. 176(3)(c), 184(3)
  364. F219
    Sch. 11 para. 10 repealed (27.7.1993 with effect for the year 1994 and subsequent underwriting years) by 1993 c. 34, s. 213, Sch. 23 Pt. III(12) Note 2
  365. F220
    Words in Sch. 11 para. 11(1) substituted (27.7.1993 with effect for the year 1993-94 and subsequent years of assessment) by 1993 c. 34, s. 79, Sch. 6 paras.20, 25(1)
  366. F221
    Words in Sch. 11 para. 19 substituted (6.3.1992 with effect as mentioned in s. 289(1)(2) of the repealing Act) by Taxation of Chargeable Gains Act 1992 (c. 12), ss. 289, 290, Sch. 10 para. 19(6)(b) (with ss. 60, 101(1), 201(3))
  367. M101
    1992 c. 12.
  368. F222
    Sch. 11 para 19A and cross heading inserted (retrospectively and deemed always to have had effect) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), s. 33, Sch. 7 paras4, 7, 8
  369. F223
    Sch. 11 para 19A and cross heading inserted (retrospectively and deemed always to have had effect) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), s. 33, Sch. 7 paras4, 7, 8
  370. F224
    Words in Sch. 11 para. 21(3) inserted (retrospectively and deemed always to have had effect) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), s. 33, Sch. 7 paras. 5(1), 7, 8
  371. F225
    Sch. 11 para. 21A inserted (retrospectively and deemed always to have had effect) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), s. 33, Sch. 7 paras. 5(2), 7, 8
  372. F226
    Finance Act 1990 (c. 29), s. 56, Sch. 10 paras. 27(3), 29(4)on and after 9 June 1989
  373. F227
    Sch. 11 para 22C and cross heading inserted (retrospectively and deemed always to have had effect) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), s. 33, Sch. 7 paras6, 7, 8
  374. F228
    Sch. 11 para 22C and cross heading inserted (retrospectively and deemed always to have had effect) by Finance (No. 2) Act 1992 (c. 48), s. 33, Sch. 7 paras6, 7, 8
  375. F229
    Sch. 11 para. 3A inserted by Finance Act 1991 (c. 31, SIF 63:1), s. 54, Sch. 12 para.4.
  376. F230
    Sch. 11 para. 5A and crossheading inserted (27.7.1993) by 1993 c. 34, s. 170, Sch. 18 para.7
  377. F231
    Sch. 11 para. 5A inserted (27.7.1993) by 1993 c. 34, s. 170, Sch. 18 para.7
  378. F232
    Words in s. 182(1) inserted (1.8.2002 for specified purposes, 26.2.2003 for specified purposes, 1.4.2003 for specified purposes) by Tax Credits Act 2002 (c. 21), s. 61, Sch. 5 para. 11(2)(a); S.I. 2002/1727; S.I. 2003/392, art. 2
  379. F233
    S. 182(1)(aa) substituted (1.8.2002 for specified purposes, 26.2.2003 for specified purposes, 1.4.2003 for specified purposes) by Tax Credits Act 2002 (c. 21), s. 61, Sch. 5 para. 11(2)(b); S.I. 2002/1727; S.I. 2003/392, art. 2
  380. F234
    S. 182(2ZA) substituted for (1.8.2002 for specified purposes, 26.2.2003 for specified purposes, 1.4.2003 for specified purposes) by Tax Credits Act 2002 (c. 21), s. 61, Sch. 5 para. 11(3); S.I. 2002/1727; S.I. 2003/392, art. 2
  381. F235
    Words in s. 182(2A) inserted (1.8.2002 for specified purposes, 26.2.2003 for specified purposes, 1.4.2003 for specified purposes) by Tax Credits Act 2002 (c. 21), s. 61, Sch. 5 para. 11(4); S.I. 2002/1727; S.I. 2003/392, art. 2
  382. F236
    Words in s. 182(4)(b) inserted (1.8.2002 for specified purposes, 26.2.2003 for specified purposes, 1.4.2003 for specified purposes) by Tax Credits Act 2002 (c. 21), s. 61, Sch. 5 para. 11(5)(a); S.I. 2002/1727; S.I. 2003/392, art. 2
  383. F237
    Words in s. 182(4)(c) inserted (1.8.2002 for specified purposes, 26.2.2003 for specified purposes, 1.4.2003 for specified purposes) by Tax Credits Act 2002 (c. 21), s. 61, Sch. 5 para. 11(5)(b); S.I. 2002/1727; S.I. 2003/392, art. 2
  384. F238
    S. 182(4)(c)(ia) substituted (1.8.2002 for specified purposes, 26.2.2003 for specified purposes, 1.4.2003 for specified purposes) by Tax Credits Act 2002 (c. 21), s. 61, Sch. 5 para. 11(5)(c); S.I. 2002/1727; S.I. 2003/392, art. 2
  385. F239
    Words in s. 182(4)(c)(iii) inserted (1.8.2002 for specified purposes, 26.2.2003 for specified purposes, 1.4.2003 for specified purposes) by Tax Credits Act 2002 (c. 21), s. 61, Sch. 5 para. 11(5)(d); S.I. 2002/1727; S.I. 2003/392, art. 2
  386. F240
    Ss. 36-42 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  387. F241
    Ss. 50-52 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  388. F242
    Sch. 5 para. 18 inserted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 163(5) (with Sch. 7)
  389. F243
    S. 178(2)(s) and preceding word inserted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 162(d) (with Sch. 7)
  390. F244
    S. 178(2)(q) renumbered (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 162(c) (with Sch. 7)
  391. F245
    Words in s. 178(2)(m) repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 162(a), Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  392. F246
    Word in s. 178(2)(p) repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 162(b), Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  393. F247
    S. 179(1)(g) repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  394. F248
    S. 179(5) repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  395. F249
    S. 45 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  396. F250
    S. 53 repealed (except s. 53(2)(f) so far as relating to s. 418(3) of ICTA) (6.4.2003) (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  397. F251
    Words in s. 53(2)(f) substituted (6.4.2003) (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 159 (with Sch. 7)
  398. F252
    S. 62 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  399. F253
    S. 64 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  400. F254
    S. 66 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  401. F255
    Words in s. 69(3AC) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 160(3) (with Sch. 7)
  402. F256
    Words in s. 69(4ZA)(b) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 160(4)(a) (with Sch. 7)
  403. F257
    Words in s. 69(4ZA)(b)(ii) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 160(4)(b) (with Sch. 7)
  404. F258
    Words in s. 69(3AA)(a) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 160(2)(a) (with Sch. 7)
  405. F259
    Words in s. 69(3AA)(b) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 160(2)(b) (with Sch. 7)
  406. F260
    Sch. 12 para. 8 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 8 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 7)
  407. F261
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 10 substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 163(4)(a) (with Sch. 7)
  408. F262
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 10 substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 163(4)(b) (with Sch. 7)
  409. F263
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 4(2A) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 163(2)(a) (with Sch. 7)
  410. F264
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 4(2A)(b) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 163(2)(b) (with Sch. 7)
  411. F265
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 9(2ZA)(b) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 163(3)(a) (with Sch. 7)
  412. F266
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 9(2ZA)(b)(ii) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 723(1)(a)(b) of the amending Act) by Income Tax (Earnings and Pensions) Act 2003 (c. 1), s. 723, Sch. 6 para. 163(3)(b) (with Sch. 7)
  413. C44
    S. 67 excluded (10.7.2003) by Finance Act 2003 (c. 14), s. 142(1)
  414. C45
    S. 69 modified (10.7.2003) by Finance Act 2003 (c. 14), s. 142(2)
  415. F267
    S. 178(2)(t) added (10.7.2003) by Finance Act 2003 (c. 14), Sch. 18 para. 4
  416. F268
    Word in s. 83 heading substituted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 33 para. 2(12) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2003 (c. 14), Sch. 33 para. 2(10)
  417. F269
    S. 84(1) repealed (10.7.2003) by Finance Act 2003 (c. 14), Sch. 43 Pt. 3(12)
  418. F270
    S. 88A repealed (with effect in accordance with Sch. 33 para. 13(11) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2003 (c. 14), Sch. 33 para. 13(3), Sch. 43 Pt. 3(12)
  419. F271
    S. 178(2)(e) repealed (13.10.2003) by Land Registration Act 2002 (c. 9), s. 136(2), Sch. 13 (with s. 129, Sch. 12 para. 1); S.I. 2003/1725, art. 2(1)
  420. F272
    S. 179(1)(a)(iv) repealed (13.10.2003) by Land Registration Act 2002 (c. 9), s. 136(2), Sch. 13 (with s. 129, Sch. 12 para. 1); S.I. 2003/1725, art. 2(1)
  421. F273
    Word in s. 182(4)(a)(iii) omitted (14.7.2004) by virtue of Scottish Public Services Ombudsman Act 2002 (Consequential Provisions and Modifications) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1823), arts. 1, 10(a)
  422. F274
    S. 182(4)(a)(v) and preceding word inserted (14.7.2004) by Scottish Public Services Ombudsman Act 2002 (Consequential Provisions and Modifications) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1823), arts. 1, 10(b)
  423. F275
    Words in s. 182(6) substituted (14.7.2004) by Scottish Public Services Ombudsman Act 2002 (Consequential Provisions and Modifications) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1823), arts. 1, 10(c)
  424. F276
    Words in s. 182(11)(c) omitted (14.7.2004) by virtue of Scottish Public Services Ombudsman Act 2002 (Consequential Provisions and Modifications) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1823), arts. 1, 10(d)
  425. F277
    S. 185 repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), Sch. 1 Pt. 6 Group 3
  426. F278
    S. 27 repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), Sch. 1 Pt. 9 Group 5
  427. F279
    S. 182(2ZB) inserted (1.1.2005) by Child Trust Funds Act 2004 (c. 6), ss. 18(3), 27; S.I. 2004/2422, art. 2
  428. F280
    Words in s. 182(1) inserted (1.1.2005) by Child Trust Funds Act 2004 (c. 6), ss. 18(2)(a), 27; S.I. 2004/2422, art. 2
  429. F281
    S. 182(1)(ab) inserted (1.1.2005) by Child Trust Funds Act 2004 (c. 6), ss. 18(2)(b), 27; S.I. 2004/2422, art. 2
  430. F282
    Words in s. 182(4)(b) inserted (1.1.2005) by Child Trust Funds Act 2004 (c. 6), ss. 18(4)(a), 27; S.I. 2004/2422, art. 2
  431. F283
    S. 182(4)(c)(ib) inserted (1.1.2005) by Child Trust Funds Act 2004 (c. 6), ss. 18(4)(b), 27; S.I. 2004/2422, art. 2
  432. F284
    Words in s. 182(4)(c) inserted (1.1.2005) by Child Trust Funds Act 2004 (c. 6), ss. 18(4)(a), 27; S.I. 2004/2422, art. 2
  433. F285
    Words in s. 182(5)(b) substituted (1.1.2005) by Child Trust Funds Act 2004 (c. 6), ss. 18(5), 27; S.I. 2004/2422, art. 2
  434. F286
    Words in s. 182(10) inserted (1.1.2005) by Child Trust Funds Act 2004 (c. 6), ss. 18(6), 27; S.I. 2004/2422, art. 2
  435. C46
    S. 182 restricted (6.4.2005) by Pensions Act 2004 (c. 35), ss. 88(2), 202(2), 322(1) (with s. 313); S.I. 2005/275, art. 2(7), Sch. Pt. 7
  436. C47
    S. 182 restricted (6.4.2005) by Pensions Act 2004 (c. 35), ss. 202(2), 322(1) (with s. 313); S.I. 2005/275, art. 2(7), Sch. Pt. 7
  437. C48
    S. 182(2ZB) modified (temp.) (6.4.2005) by Child Trust Funds Act 2004 (c. 6), s. 24(1)(4)27; S.I. 2004/3369, art. 2(1)
  438. C49
    S. 182(2ZB) modified (temp.) (6.4.2005) by Child Trust Funds Act 2004 (c. 6), s. 24(1)(4)27; S.I. 2004/3369, art. 2(1)
  439. F287
    Words in s. 68(2)(a) substituted (6.4.2005) by Income Tax (Trading and Other Income) Act 2005 (c. 5), s. 883(1), Sch. 1 para. 407(a) (with Sch. 2)
  440. F288
    S. 68(2)(b)(ba)(bb) substituted for s. 68(2)(b) (6.4.2005) by Income Tax (Trading and Other Income) Act 2005 (c. 5), s. 883(1), Sch. 1 para. 407(b) (with Sch. 2)
  441. F289
    Words in s. 71(4)(a) substituted (6.4.2005) by Income Tax (Trading and Other Income) Act 2005 (c. 5), s. 883(1), Sch. 1 para. 408(a) (with Sch. 2)
  442. F290
    S. 71(4)(b)(ba)(bb) substituted for s. 71(4)(b) (6.4.2005) by Income Tax (Trading and Other Income) Act 2005 (c. 5), s. 883(1), Sch. 1 para. 408(b) (with Sch. 2)
  443. F291
    S. 109(4) repealed (6.4.2005) by Income Tax (Trading and Other Income) Act 2005 (c. 5), s. 883(1), Sch. 3 (with Sch. 2)
  444. F292
    S. 112 repealed (6.4.2005) by Income Tax (Trading and Other Income) Act 2005 (c. 5), s. 883(1), Sch. 1 para. 410, Sch. 3 (with Sch. 2)
  445. F293
    S. 113 repealed (6.4.2005) by Income Tax (Trading and Other Income) Act 2005 (c. 5), s. 883(1), Sch. 1 para. 410, Sch. 3 (with Sch. 2)
  446. F294
    S. 182(10A) inserted (18.4.2005) by Commissioners for Revenue and Customs Act 2005 (c. 11), s. 53(1), Sch. 4 para. 39; S.I. 2005/1126, art. 2(2)(h)
  447. F295
    Words in s. 182(6) substituted (1.4.2006) by Public Services Ombudsman (Wales) Act 2005 (c. 10), s. 40, Sch. 6 para. 22(b); S.I. 2005/2800, art. 5(1)(3)
  448. F296
    Words in s. 182(11)(c) repealed (1.4.2006) by Public Services Ombudsman (Wales) Act 2005 (c. 10), s. 40, Sch. 6 para. 22(c), Sch. 7; S.I. 2005/2800, art. 5(1)(3)
  449. F297
    S. 182(4)(a)(iv) substituted (1.4.2006) by Public Services Ombudsman (Wales) Act 2005 (c. 10), s. 40, Sch. 6 para. 22(a); S.I. 2005/2800, art. 5(1)(3)
  450. F298
    Sch. 6 repealed (6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2004 (c. 12), Sch. 42 Pt. 3 (with Sch. 36)
  451. F299
    Sch. 7 repealed (6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2004 (c. 12), Sch. 42 Pt. 3 (with Sch. 36)
  452. F300
    Ss. 75-77 repealed (6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2004 (c. 12), Sch. 42 Pt. 3 (with Sch. 36)
  453. F301
    Word in s. 68(2)(ba) inserted (retrospective to 6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2006 (c. 25), Sch. 13 para. 28(3)(a)(7)
  454. F302
    Words in s. 68(2)(bb) repealed (retrospective to 6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2006 (c. 25), Sch. 13 para. 28(3)(b)(7), Sch. 26 Pt. 3(15)
  455. F303
    Word in s. 71(4)(ba) inserted (retrospective to 6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2006 (c. 25), Sch. 13 para. 28(4)(a)(7)
  456. F304
    Word in s. 71(4)(bb) repealed (retrospective to 6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2006 (c. 25), Sch. 13 para. 28(4)(b)(7), Sch. 26 Pt. 3(15)
  457. F305
    S. 170(4)(a)(b) repealed (6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2004 (c. 12), Sch. 42 Pt. 3 (with Sch. 36)
  458. F306
    Sch. 12 para. 15 repealed (6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2004 (c. 12), Sch. 42 Pt. 3 (with Sch. 36)
  459. F307
    Sch. 12 para. 16 repealed (6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2004 (c. 12), Sch. 42 Pt. 3 (with Sch. 36)
  460. F308
    S. 68(2)(c) repealed (with effect in relation to payments made on or after 6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2006 (c. 25), Sch. 13 para. 28(2)(a)(5), Sch. 26 Pt. 3(15)
  461. F309
    S. 71(4)(c) repealed (with effect in relation to payments made on or after 6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2006 (c. 25), Sch. 13 para. 28(2)(b)(5), Sch. 26 Pt. 3(15)
  462. F310
    S. 110 repealed (with effect in relation to payments made on or after 6.4.2006) by Finance Act 2006 (c. 25), Sch. 13 para. 28(2)(c)(5), Sch. 26 Pt. 3(15)
  463. F311
    Sch. 8A repealed (with effect in accordance with reg. 1 of the amending S.I.) by The Overseas Life Insurance Companies Regulations 2006 (S.I. 2006/3271), reg. 1, Sch. Pt. 1
  464. F312
    S. 89A repealed (with effect in accordance with reg. 1 of the amending S.I.) by The Overseas Life Insurance Companies Regulations 2006 (S.I. 2006/3271), reg. 1, Sch. Pt. 1
  465. C50
    S. 178 applied (6.4.2007) by The Income Tax (Construction Industry Scheme) Regulations 2005 (S.I. 2005/2045), regs. 1, 14(6) (with reg. 60, Sch. 1)
  466. C51
    S. 178 applied (6.4.2007) by The Income Tax (Construction Industry Scheme) Regulations 2005 (S.I. 2005/2045), regs. 1, 15(5) (with reg. 60, Sch. 1)
  467. F313
    S. 111(1)-(3) repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 1 para. 280(a), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  468. F314
    S. 111(6)-(8) repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 1 para. 280(a), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  469. F315
    Words in s. 111(5) repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 1 para. 280(b), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  470. F316
    S. 47 repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  471. F317
    S. 96(2) repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  472. F318
    S. 149(3)(d) repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  473. F319
    S. 149(4)(b) repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 2 (with Sch. 2)
  474. F320
    S. 48 repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  475. F321
    Ss. 30-32 repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  476. F322
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 16(2)(b) substituted (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 1 para. 283(3)(a) (with Sch. 2)
  477. F323
    S. 170(3) repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 2 (with Sch. 2)
  478. F324
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 15 substituted (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 1 para. 283(2) (with Sch. 2)
  479. F325
    Sch. 12 para. 13(1)-(3) repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  480. F326
    Sch. 12 para. 17 repealed (6.4.2007) by Income Tax Act 2007 (c. 3), s. 1034(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  481. F327
    S. 84(2) repealed (19.7.2007) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 10 para. 16(4)(a), Sch. 27 Pt. 2(10)
  482. F328
    S. 84(3) repealed (19.7.2007) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 10 para. 16(4)(a), Sch. 27 Pt. 2(10)
  483. F329
    S. 84(5) repealed (19.7.2007) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 10 para. 16(4)(a), Sch. 27 Pt. 2(10)
  484. F330
    S. 84(6) repealed (19.7.2007) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 10 para. 16(4)(a), Sch. 27 Pt. 2(10)
  485. F331
    Word in s. 88 heading substituted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 10 para. 17(2) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 10 para. 15(3)
  486. F332
    S. 87 repealed (19.7.2007) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 10 para. 16(4)(d), Sch. 27 Pt. 2(10)
  487. F333
    S. 90A repealed (with effect in accordance with Sch. 10 para. 17(2) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 10 para. 14(3)(c), Sch. 27 Pt. 2(10)
  488. F334
    S. 163(1)(a) repealed (19.7.2007) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 27 Pt. 5(5)
  489. F335
    Words in s. 182(10) inserted (1.8.2002 for specified purposes, 26.2.2003 for specified purposes, 1.4.2003 for specified purposes) by Tax Credits Act 2002 (c. 21), s. 61, Sch. 5 para. 11(7); S.I. 2002/1727; S.I. 2003/392, art. 2
  490. F336
    S. 146 repealed (8.11.2007) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), s. 84(5), Sch. 27 Pt. 5(1); S.I. 2007/3166, art. 2(c)
  491. F337
    S. 147 repealed (8.11.2007) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), s. 84(5), Sch. 27 Pt. 5(1); S.I. 2007/3166, art. 2(c)
  492. F338
    S. 148(4) repealed (8.11.2007) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), s. 84(4)(5), Sch. 22 para. 7, Sch. 27 Pt. 5(1); S.I. 2007/3166, art. 2(c)
  493. C52
    Act modified by 1988 c. 1, Sch. 19ABA paras. 12-25 (as inserted (with effect in accordance with art. 1(2) of the amending S.I.) by The Insurance Companies (Taxation of Reinsurance Business) (Corporation Tax Acts) (Amendment) Order 2007 (S.I. 2007/3430), arts. 1(1), 3(3))
  494. F339
    S. 82C repealed (with effect in accordance with Sch. 9 para. 17(2) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 9 para. 9, Sch. 27 Pt. 2(9); S.I. 2008/379, art. 2
  495. F340
    S. 83AA repealed (with effect in accordance with Sch. 9 para. 17(2)(3) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 9 para. 11(2)(b), Sch. 27 Pt. 2(9); S.I. 2008/379, art. 2
  496. F341
    S. 83AB repealed (with effect in accordance with Sch. 9 para. 17(2)(3) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2007 (c. 11), Sch. 9 para. 11(2)(c), Sch. 27 Pt. 2(9); S.I. 2008/379, art. 2
  497. F342
    S. 83ZA omitted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 17 para. 4(1) of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), Sch. 17 para. 1(4) (with Sch. 17 para. 4(4))
  498. F343
    S. 90 omitted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 14 para. 18 of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), Sch. 14 para. 17(a)
  499. F344
    Sch. 9 omitted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 14 para. 18 of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), Sch. 14 para. 17(a)
  500. C53
    Act modified (with effect in accordance with reg. 1 of the amending S.I.) by The Overseas Life Insurance Companies Regulations 2006 (S.I. 2006/3271), regs. 19-26 (as amended by S.I. 2007/2146, regs. 14-18; S.I. 2007/3449, regs. 7, 8; S.I. 2008/1924, regs. 13-17)
  501. F345
    S. 43 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1329(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2009 (c. 4), s. 1329(1), Sch. 1 para. 339, Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2 Pts. 1, 2)
  502. F346
    S. 44 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1329(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2009 (c. 4), s. 1329(1), Sch. 1 para. 340, Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2 Pts. 1, 2)
  503. F347
    Words in s. 85A heading substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 1329(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2009 (c. 4), s. 1329(1), Sch. 1 para. 349(8) (with Sch. 2 Pts. 1, 2)
  504. F348
    S. 114 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1329(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2009 (c. 4), s. 1329(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2 Pts. 1, 2)
  505. F349
    S. 142(2) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 113(2), Sch. 36 para. 92(b) (with Sch. 36 para. 38); S.I. 2009/404, art. 2 (with art. 12)
  506. F350
    S. 142(3) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 113(2), Sch. 36 para. 92(b) (with Sch. 36 para. 38); S.I. 2009/404, art. 2 (with art. 12)
  507. F351
    S. 142(4) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 113(2), Sch. 36 para. 92(b) (with Sch. 36 para. 38); S.I. 2009/404, art. 2 (with art. 12)
  508. F352
    S. 142(6)(a) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 113(2), Sch. 36 para. 92(b) (with Sch. 36 para. 38); S.I. 2009/404, art. 2 (with art. 12)
  509. F353
    S. 142(7) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 113(2), Sch. 36 para. 92(b) (with Sch. 36 para. 38); S.I. 2009/404, art. 2 (with art. 12)
  510. F354
    S. 142(8) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 113(2), Sch. 36 para. 92(b) (with Sch. 36 para. 38); S.I. 2009/404, art. 2 (with art. 12)
  511. F355
    S. 142(9) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 113(2), Sch. 36 para. 92(b) (with Sch. 36 para. 38); S.I. 2009/404, art. 2 (with art. 12)
  512. F356
    S. 144(3) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 113(2), Sch. 36 para. 92(b) (with Sch. 36 para. 38); S.I. 2009/404, art. 2 (with art. 12)
  513. F357
    S. 144(5) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 113(2), Sch. 36 para. 92(b) (with Sch. 36 para. 38); S.I. 2009/404, art. 2 (with art. 12)
  514. F358
    S. 144(7) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 113(2), Sch. 36 para. 92(b) (with Sch. 36 para. 38); S.I. 2009/404, art. 2 (with art. 12)
  515. F359
    Words in s. 182(2)(b) substituted (1.4.2009) by The Transfer of Tribunal Functions and Revenue and Customs Appeals Order 2009 (S.I. 2009/56), art. 1(2), Sch. 1 para. 167(a)
  516. F360
    Words in s. 182(2ZA)(b) substituted (1.4.2009) by The Transfer of Tribunal Functions and Revenue and Customs Appeals Order 2009 (S.I. 2009/56), art. 1(2), Sch. 1 para. 167(b)
  517. F361
    Words in s. 182(2ZB)(b) substituted (1.4.2009) by The Transfer of Tribunal Functions and Revenue and Customs Appeals Order 2009 (S.I. 2009/56), art. 1(2), Sch. 1 para. 167(c)
  518. F362
    Words in s. 182(2A)(a)(ii) substituted (1.4.2009) by The Transfer of Tribunal Functions and Revenue and Customs Appeals Order 2009 (S.I. 2009/56), art. 1(2), Sch. 1 para. 167(d)
  519. F363
    S. 182(3) omitted (1.4.2009) by virtue of The Transfer of Tribunal Functions and Revenue and Customs Appeals Order 2009 (S.I. 2009/56), art. 1(2), Sch. 1 para. 167(e)
  520. F364
    S. 33(4)(a) omitted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 1 para. 7 of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2009 (c. 10), Sch. 1 para. 6(c)
  521. F365
    S. 33(5)(b) omitted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 1 para. 7 of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2009 (c. 10), Sch. 1 para. 6(c)
  522. F366
    S. 33(8)(a) omitted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 1 para. 7 of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2009 (c. 10), Sch. 1 para. 6(c)
  523. F367
    S. 33(9)(b) omitted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 1 para. 7 of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2009 (c. 10), Sch. 1 para. 6(c)
  524. F368
    S. 178(2)(ga) inserted (21.7.2009) by Finance Act 2009 (c. 10), s. 105(5)(a)
  525. F369
    Word in s. 178(2)(k) inserted (21.7.2009) by Finance Act 2009 (c. 10), s. 105(5)(b)
  526. F370
    S. 178(5) omitted (21.7.2009) by virtue of Finance Act 2009 (c. 10), s. 105(6)(a)
  527. F371
    S. 57(2) omitted (13.8.2009) by virtue of The Finance Act 2009, Schedule 47 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2009 (S.I. 2009/2035), art. 1, Sch. para. 60(c)
  528. F372
    S. 123(1)(b) omitted (13.8.2009) by virtue of The Finance Act 2009, Schedule 47 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2009 (S.I. 2009/2035), art. 1, Sch. para. 60(c)
  529. F373
    Sch. 12 para. 2 omitted (13.8.2009) by virtue of The Finance Act 2009, Schedule 47 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2009 (S.I. 2009/2035), art. 1, Sch. para. 25
  530. F374
    Sch. 12 para. 5 omitted (13.8.2009) by virtue of The Finance Act 2009, Schedule 47 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2009 (S.I. 2009/2035), art. 1, Sch. para. 60(c)
  531. F375
    S. 35 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  532. F376
    S. 60(1)(2) repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  533. F377
    S. 60(4) repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  534. F378
    S. 100 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  535. F379
    S. 101 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  536. F380
    S. 102 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 1 para. 215, Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  537. F381
    S. 104 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  538. F382
    S. 105 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  539. F383
    S. 149(4)(a)(i) omitted (1.4.2010) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 118(2), Sch. 39 para. 65(a); S.I. 2009/403, art. 2(2) (with art. 10)
  540. F384
    S. 149(4)(a)(ii) omitted (1.4.2010) by virtue of Finance Act 2008 (c. 9), s. 118(2), Sch. 39 para. 65(a); S.I. 2009/403, art. 2(2) (with art. 10)
  541. F385
    S. 151 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 381(1) of the amending Act) by Taxation (International and Other Provisions) Act 2010 (c. 8), s. 381(1), Sch. 7 para. 60, Sch. 10 Pt. 12 (with Sch. 9 paras. 1-9, 22)
  542. F386
    S. 164(5)(b) repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 381(1) of the amending Act) by Taxation (International and Other Provisions) Act 2010 (c. 8), s. 381(1), Sch. 10 Pt. 12 (with Sch. 9 paras. 1-9, 22)
  543. F387
    S. 178(6) repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  544. F388
    Words in s. 182A(6) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 381(1) of the amending Act) by Taxation (International and Other Provisions) Act 2010 (c. 8), s. 381(1), Sch. 8 para. 39 (with Sch. 9 paras. 1-9, 22)
  545. F389
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 16(2)(a) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 1 para. 216(a) (with Sch. 2)
  546. F390
    Words in Sch. 5 para. 16(2)(c) substituted (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 1 para. 216(b) (with Sch. 2)
  547. F391
    Sch. 12 para. 1 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 1 para. 217, Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  548. F392
    Sch. 12 paras. 3, 4 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 1 para. 217, Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  549. F393
    Sch. 12 paras. 11, 12 repealed (with effect in accordance with s. 1184(1) of the amending Act) by Corporation Tax Act 2010 (c. 4), s. 1184(1), Sch. 3 Pt. 1 (with Sch. 2)
  550. F394
    Word in s. 178(2)(f) omitted (1.4.2011) by virtue of The Finance Act 2009, Schedules 55 and 56 (Income Tax Self Assessment and Pension Schemes) (Appointed Days and Consequential and Savings Provisions) Order 2011 (S.I. 2011/702), arts. 1(1), 12 (with arts. 20, 22)
  551. C54
    S. 178 applied by S.I. 2009/470 reg. 39(2)(a)(5)(a) (as substituted (31.10.2011) by The Education (Student Loans) (Repayment) (Amendment) Regulations 2011 (S.I. 2011/784), regs. 1(2), 8)
  552. C55
    S. 178 applied by SR 2009/128, reg. 34 (as substituted (N.I.) (31.10.2011) by The Education (Student Loans) (Repayment) (Amendment) Regulations (Northern Ireland) 2011 (S.R. 2011/137), regs. 1(2), 7)
  553. C56
    Sch. 5 para. 3(3)(c) applied (with modifications) (E.W.) (23.12.2011) by The Legal Services Act 2007 (Designation as a Licensing Authority) (No. 2) Order 2011 (S.I. 2011/2866), art. 1(2), Sch. 2
  554. F395
    Sch. 5 para. 4(10) omitted (with effect in accordance with art. 7 of the commencing S.I.) by virtue of Finance Act 2010 (c. 13), Sch. 6 paras. 12, 34(2); S.I. 2012/736, art. 7
  555. F396
    S. 182(4)(a)(ia) inserted (1.4.2012) by Budget Responsibility and National Audit Act 2011 (c. 4), s. 29, Sch. 5 para. 14(2)(b); S.I. 2011/2576, art. 5
  556. F397
    Words in s. 182(6) inserted (1.4.2012) by Budget Responsibility and National Audit Act 2011 (c. 4), s. 29, Sch. 5 para. 14(3); S.I. 2011/2576, art. 5
  557. F398
    Words in s. 182(4)(a)(i) substituted (1.4.2012) by Budget Responsibility and National Audit Act 2011 (c. 4), s. 29, Sch. 5 para. 14(2)(a); S.I. 2011/2576, art. 5
  558. F399
    S. 182(11)(a)(b) omitted (1.4.2012) by virtue of Budget Responsibility and National Audit Act 2011 (c. 4), s. 29, Sch. 5 para. 14(4); S.I. 2011/2576, art. 5
  559. F400
    Sch. 12 para. 3 omitted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 23 para. 65 of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2011 (c. 11), Sch. 23 paras. 56, 65(1)(a) (with Sch. 23 paras. 50, 65(1)(b))
  560. F401
    S. 67(2)(b)(c) substituted for s. 67(2)(b) (17.7.2012) by Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 48
  561. F402
    S. 82 omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 49
  562. F403
    S. 82A omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 50
  563. F404
    S. 82B omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 51
  564. F405
    S. 83 omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 53
  565. F406
    S. 83A omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 57
  566. F407
    S. 83B omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 58
  567. F408
    S. 83XA omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 54
  568. F409
    S. 83YA omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 55
  569. F410
    S. 83YB omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 55
  570. F411
    S. 84(4) omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 247(a)(i)
  571. F412
    S. 85 omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 59
  572. F413
    S. 85A omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 60
  573. F414
    S. 86 omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 61
  574. F415
    S. 88 omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 62
  575. F416
    S. 89 omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 63
  576. F417
    Sch. 8 omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 247(a)(ii)
  577. F418
    Ss. 82D-82F omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 52
  578. F419
    Ss. 83YC-83YF omitted (17.7.2012) by virtue of Finance Act 2012 (c. 14), Sch. 16 para. 56
  579. F420
    S. 114 repealed (31.1.2013) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2013 (c. 2), s. 3(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 10 Group 1
  580. F421
    S. 91 repealed (31.1.2013) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2013 (c. 2), s. 3(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 10 Group 1
  581. F422
    S. 92(1)(2) repealed (31.1.2013) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2013 (c. 2), s. 3(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 10 Group 1
  582. F423
    S. 96(4) repealed (31.1.2013) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2013 (c. 2), s. 3(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 10 Group 1
  583. F424
    S. 96(1) repealed (31.1.2013) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2013 (c. 2), s. 3(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 10 Group 1
  584. F425
    S. 160(3) repealed (31.1.2013) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2013 (c. 2), s. 3(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 10 Group 1
  585. F426
    S. 162 repealed (31.1.2013) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2013 (c. 2), s. 3(2), Sch. 1 Pt. 10 Group 1
  586. F427
    S. 182(4)(a)(iiia) inserted (E.W.) (1.4.2014) by Public Audit (Wales) Act 2013 (anaw 3), s. 35(2), Sch. 4 para. 2 (with Sch. 3 para. 3); S.I. 2013/1466, art. 3(1)
  587. C57
    S. 178 applied (17.7.2014) by Finance Act 2014 (c. 26), Sch. 35 para. 11(1)
  588. F428
    Words in s. 182(11A) substituted (15.3.2015 being the date on which 1992 c. 7, Pt. 12ZC comes into force by virtue of S.R. 2015/86, art. 3(1)(d)) by Children and Families Act 2014 (c. 6), s. 139(6), Sch. 7 para. 5(6)(a); S.I. 2014/1640, art. 8(a) (with art. 18)
  589. F429
    Words in s. 182(11A) substituted (15.3.2015 being the date on which 1992 c. 7, Pt. 12ZC comes into force by virtue of S.R. 2015/86, art. 3(1)(d)) by Children and Families Act 2014 (c. 6), s. 139(6), Sch. 7 para. 5(6)(c); S.I. 2014/1640, art. 8(a) (with art. 18)
  590. C58
    S. 178 applied (with effect in accordance with s. 116(1) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2015 (c. 11), s. 79(1)
  591. F430
    Word in s. 178(2) omitted (with effect in accordance with s. 116(1) of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2015 (c. 11), s. 115(4)
  592. F431
    S. 178(2)(v) and word inserted (with effect in accordance with s. 116(1) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2015 (c. 11), s. 115(4)
  593. F432
    Words in s. 182(1)(c) substituted (5.4.2015) by Children and Families Act 2014 (c. 6), s. 139(6), Sch. 7 para. 5(2)(a); S.I. 2014/1640, art. 7(c) (with arts. 16, 17)
  594. F433
    Words in s. 182(2A)(a) substituted (5.4.2015) by Children and Families Act 2014 (c. 6), s. 139(6), Sch. 7 para. 5(3)(a); S.I. 2014/1640, art. 7(c) (with arts. 16, 17)
  595. F434
    Words in s. 182(4)(c)(iii) substituted (5.4.2015) by Children and Families Act 2014 (c. 6), s. 139(6), Sch. 7 para. 5(4)(a); S.I. 2014/1640, art. 7(c) (with arts. 16, 17)
  596. F435
    Words in s. 182(5)(b) substituted (5.4.2015) by Children and Families Act 2014 (c. 6), s. 139(6), Sch. 7 para. 5(5)(a); S.I. 2014/1640, art. 7(c) (with arts. 16, 17)
  597. C59
    S. 178 applied by 2010 c. 4, s. 357YR(3) (as inserted (with effect in accordance with s. 38(9)-(12) of the amending Act) by Finance (No. 2) Act 2015 (c. 33), s. 38(3))
  598. F436
    S. 115 omitted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 1 para. 73 of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2016 (c. 24), Sch. 1 para. 54(a)
  599. F437
    Words in s. 179(1)(b)(i) omitted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 1 para. 73 of the amending Act) by virtue of Finance Act 2016 (c. 24), Sch. 1 para. 54(b)
  600. F438
    S. 178(2)(u) omitted (12.2.2019) by virtue of Finance Act 2019 (c. 1), s. 88(2)(a)
  601. F439
    S. 178(7) omitted (12.2.2019) by virtue of Finance Act 2019 (c. 1), s. 88(2)(c)
  602. F440
    Words in s. 178(3)(f) inserted (12.2.2019) by Finance Act 2019 (c. 1), s. 88(2)(b)
  603. F441
    Words in s. 182(1)(c) substituted (18.1.2020) by Parental Bereavement (Leave and Pay) Act 2018 (c. 24), s. 2(2), Sch. para. 8(2); S.I. 2020/45, reg. 2
  604. F442
    Words in s. 182(11A) substituted (18.1.2020) by Parental Bereavement (Leave and Pay) Act 2018 (c. 24), s. 2(2), Sch. para. 8(3)(a); S.I. 2020/45, reg. 2
  605. F443
    Words in s. 182(11A) substituted (18.1.2020) by Parental Bereavement (Leave and Pay) Act 2018 (c. 24), s. 2(2), Sch. para. 8(3)(b); S.I. 2020/45, reg. 2
  606. F444
    Words in s. 182(2A)(a) substituted (18.1.2020) by Parental Bereavement (Leave and Pay) Act 2018 (c. 24), s. 2(2), Sch. para. 8(2); S.I. 2020/45, reg. 2
  607. F445
    Words in s. 182(4)(c)(iii) substituted (18.1.2020) by Parental Bereavement (Leave and Pay) Act 2018 (c. 24), s. 2(2), Sch. para. 8(2); S.I. 2020/45, reg. 2
  608. F446
    Words in s. 182(5)(b) substituted (18.1.2020) by Parental Bereavement (Leave and Pay) Act 2018 (c. 24), s. 2(2), Sch. para. 8(2); S.I. 2020/45, reg. 2
  609. F447
    S. 178(2)(w) inserted (22.7.2020) by Finance Act 2020 (c. 14), Sch. 10 para. 2(3)
  610. F448
    Word in s. 178(2)(u) omitted (22.7.2020) by virtue of Finance Act 2020 (c. 14), Sch. 10 para. 2(2)
  611. F449
    S. 178(2)(x) inserted (with effect in relation to accounting periods commencing on or after 31.12.2023) by Finance (No. 2) Act 2023 (c. 30), s. 264, Sch. 14 para. 68(2)
  612. F450
    S. 178(2)(y) inserted (with effect in relation to accounting periods commencing on or after 31.12.2023) by Finance (No. 2) Act 2023 (c. 30), s. 278, Sch. 18 para. 7(2)
  613. F451
    Words in s. 182(1)(c) substituted (17.1.2025) by Neonatal Care (Leave and Pay) Act 2023 (c. 20), s. 3(3), Sch. para. 8(2); S.I. 2025/41, reg. 2
  614. F452
    Words in s. 182(2A)(a) substituted (17.1.2025) by Neonatal Care (Leave and Pay) Act 2023 (c. 20), s. 3(3), Sch. para. 8(2); S.I. 2025/41, reg. 2
  615. F453
    Words in s. 182(4)(c)(iii) substituted (17.1.2025) by Neonatal Care (Leave and Pay) Act 2023 (c. 20), s. 3(3), Sch. para. 8(2); S.I. 2025/41, reg. 2
  616. F454
    Words in s. 182(5)(b) substituted (17.1.2025) by Neonatal Care (Leave and Pay) Act 2023 (c. 20), s. 3(3), Sch. para. 8(2); S.I. 2025/41, reg. 2
  617. F455
    Words in s. 182(11A) substituted (17.1.2025) by Neonatal Care (Leave and Pay) Act 2023 (c. 20), s. 3(3), Sch. para. 8(3)(a); S.I. 2025/41, reg. 2
  618. F456
    Words in s. 182(11A) substituted (17.1.2025) by Neonatal Care (Leave and Pay) Act 2023 (c. 20), s. 3(3), Sch. para. 8(3)(b); S.I. 2025/41, reg. 2
  619. F457
    S. 178(2)(v) omitted (for accounting periods beginning on or after 1.1.2026) by virtue of Finance Act 2026 (c. 11), s. 46(2), Sch. 5 para. 3(8)
  620. F458
    Word in s. 178(2)(x) substituted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 8 para. 53(5)-(13) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2026 (c. 11), Sch. 8 para. 52(2)(a)
  621. F459
    Word in s. 178(2)(x) inserted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 8 para. 53(5)-(13) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2026 (c. 11), Sch. 8 para. 52(2)(b)
  622. F460
    Word in s. 178(2)(y) substituted (with effect in accordance with Sch. 8 para. 53(5)-(13) of the amending Act) by Finance Act 2026 (c. 11), Sch. 8 para. 52(3)
  623. M102
    1976 c. 40.
  624. M103
    1976 c. 40.
  625. M104
    1986 c. 41.